121 16 16MB
English Pages 280 [286] Year 2023
WITH
NEW
UPDATES
COMING HOME The Return to True
Self
MARTIA NELSON "This book offers deep insight into the pure potentialitywithin all of us. From this level, anything can be accomplished, and all desires can
come
true."
DEEPAK CHOPRA
"The clearest, most powerful explanation of the universe and how it SHAKTI GAWAIN works that I have ever read. It's brilliant."
COMING HOME 9 The Return to True
Martia Nelson
Self
COMING HOME: The Return to True Self © 2010 Martia Nelson
Cover
art
© 2000 Martia Nelson
Previous versions of this book were originally published in 1993
and 1995 by Nataraj Publishing,
a division of
New World Library. All rights reserved. This
book may not be reproduced
in
whole or
written permission from the author, except by a reviewer passages in a review; nor
may any
retrieval system, or transmitted in
part of this
in part
who may
without
quote brief
book be reproduced, stored
in a
any form or by any means electronic, mechanical,
photocopying, recording, or other, without written permission from the author.
The author
of this
book does not dispense medical advice nor prescribe the use of any
technique as a form of treatment for physical or mental problems. The advice of a physician or licensed health practitioner
might
exist. In the
is
recommended when such
cannot assume any responsibility for your actions or their author
is
a
problem
event you use any of the information in this book, the author effects.
The
intent of the
only to offer information of a general nature to help you in your quest for
personal growth.
Martia Nelson
PO Box 1932 Sebastopol,
CA 95473
[email protected]
www.MartiaNelson.com
Ingratitude,
and loving memory of
my mother, Virginia, Mrs. Tate, and painter extraordinaire, Letty
Withloveandpetsto Chloe and Rincon
Pang
ACKNOWLEDGMENTS I
extend
my
heartfelt gratitude to Marilyn
unwaveringly encouragement for insightful editing
and
computer seem almost safe
harbor to
my work
Hughes
and
for friendship
this book;
Jan Fischer
tactful delivery; Sarah Francis for friendly,
and Linda Thomas
and
making
for
my
for providing years of
my insecurity about sharing myself with the world.
Shakti Gawain, thank you for
first
pubhshing Coming Home in 1993 and
for
your timeless friendship.
To
all
who
traveling
choose a path of true
with you.
self discovery:
I
am
grateful to be
CONTENTS Preface
j$
Introduction
77
PARTI
23
My Story: I Begin the Return 1.
Opening
2.
Truth
3.
Personality and True Self
4.
My Search
5.
The Overview
6.
Seeing
7.
Sounding
8.
Your True Self Channeling and Sounding
PART II
47
Inner Guidance: Listening to Spirit Within 9.
Higher Guidance or Inner Guidance?
10. 11.
12.
How Accessible Is Inner Guidance? How Do Inner Guidance and Higher Guidance Relate? Guidance and
Its
Form
PART III Self-Love:
Your Source ofLife 13.
The Love That You Are
14.
Loving Yourself and Sweet Me
15.
Letting Love Light Your Life
16.
Choosing Love
17.
Loving Others
18.
Recognizing True Love
57
19.
Love and Physical Reality
Vivian
Chloe
PART IV
77
Journey into Form: The Exploration ofLimitation 20.
The Journey So
21. Illusion
far
and Truth
22. Living a Split 23.
Choosing Your Reality
24.
Emanations of Light
Marjorie
PARTV
101
Creating Your World:
Abundance and Manifesting 25.
Longing
for
Abundance
26.
Receiving Abundance
27.
Manifesting
28.
Empowering Your
29. Relinquishing 30. 31.
Desires
Control
Owning your Power to Create Transforming Your Blocks
Louisa and Abundance
PART VI
131
Enlivened Emotion:
The Healing Power ofIntense Feeling 32.
Emotion
33.
Love
34.
Hate
as a Vehicle for Spirit
35.
Forgiveness
36.
Anger
Clark
PART VII
163
My Story Continues: Painting 37.
Breakthrough
38.
Integrating
39.
What Happened
Letty Pang
PART VIII
171
Living the Split:
Redefining Destiny 40.
Heeding the Call
41.
Empowering Yourself with Yearning and Not Knowing
42.
Empowering Your Speech
43. Setting
44.
Your Course
Updating the
Map
45. Getting Free of Self-Judgment
Cherie Deter McArthur
PART IX A wakened Personality: Loyal Servant to Unlimited Spirit 46. Transformation
and Perfection
47.
Nurturing Your Personality
48.
Where
Is
Your Support?
49. Personality as Ally 50. Bridging the Split 51.
Approaching the Bridge
52.
Carrying Power
53.
Discharging Excess Energy
54.
Moving Through
55.
The Nothing
Louisa
the Gate
199
PARTX
231
Planetary Survival:
Facing Challenge in the World 56.
Deepening your Awareness
57. Survival
and the One Mind
58.
Transforming Fear
59.
Attachment, Suffering, and Disaster
60. 61.
From Crisis
to
Compassion
Allowing Integration
Rincon
PARTXI
257
You are the Earth: Living the 62. Inner 63.
One Body
and Outer
The World Catches
64. Healing the 65.
Realities
Up with You
World
Sharing Consciousness with the Earth
PARTXII
269
My Story: Epilogue My Life Goes to The Dogs 66.
Lessons of New Love
67.
Dog Training
68.
Conditions Change Again
as a Spiritual Practice
69. Clear Sailing
279
Contact Information
NOTE: Except where
last
names
are given,
are not people's real names.
names used in the
stories
ATTUNEMENTS AND MEDITATIONS To make
the material as practical and usable as possible, attunements and
guided meditations are sprinkled throughout
work with
they are listed below. As you creative in altering
them to
True
Self
Channeling
True
Self
Sounding
fit
this book.
these suggestions, let yourself be
your needs and your sense of truth.
Giving Yourself Sweet Me Giving Yourself Sweet Me Quickly Letting Love Light Your Life
Self-Love #1
Self-Love #2
Receiving Abundance
Being Creator of Your Life #1
Being Creator of Your Life #2 Being Creator of Your Life #3 Being Creator of Your Life #4 Forgiveness Staying
Aware in Anger
Healing Through Anger Healing Through Anger: Short Version
Accepting the Split Yearning and Not Knowing Talking About Yearning and Not Knowing Yearning,
Not Knowing, and Decisions
Finding Affection for Self Facing Self -Judgment Creating Changes in Your Life Feeling the Support of Source
Discharging Excess Energy
Moving Through the Gate Being in the Nothing
The One Mind Responding to People's Fear Finding Compassion in a Crisis
Witnessing Your Attachments
Responding to Distress
For quick reference,
in the
World
PREFACE I've
known
Martia Nelson for
many
years. I've
the evolutionary process she describes in the I've
watched her go through
first
part of this book, and
seen her develop an extraordinary connection with inner guidance as
she writes about in Part years,
II.
I've
had
intuitive reading
from her over the
and received amazingly clear and accurate insights and advice.
When stayed
me
Martia sent
up almost
all
the original version of this manuscript,
night reading
it,
feeling very excited.
I
knew
it
I
was
one of the best metaphysical books I had ever read. Coming Home is a
can integrate our
clear, practical
human
and inspiring explanation of how we
experience with our essential spiritual nature
and express the potential that dwells within
all
of us.
As
I
read
it,
it
me into an expanded perspective on my life. I have found it very helpful in my own personal process, and I know others will as well. Anyone who has resonated with my work is likely to love this book. Frankly, at this stage of my life I read very few books of this nature. actually
lifts
This one will be on
my
bedside table for quite some time.
I
believe
it's
destined to become a classic.
— Shakti Gawain
INTRODUCTION
We all know what its like to want to improve ourselves. We want to be and compassionate. Become better parents and better
loving, patient,
people. Learn to forgive. Develop our creative
we bring peace and goodness
gifts.
Find meaning in
Become
to the world.
life
as
spiritually evolved, or
even enlightened. These are wonderful things to want!
And
there are situations in our outer lives
we wish would
improve,
We want a job doing something we love, something that makes our heart sing and our soul soar. We want more money so we can feel safe and supported and free. We want a relationship with a true partner, a too.
soul mate
who will help us open to
our
full
capacity to love and be loved.
We want to release the struggle in our lives and replace and balance. These
it
with harmony
are wonderful, too!
We are ready to make the shift from surviving to thriving. This book can help us do that.
most
of us struggle
or
ego)
recognizing
what
identity,
rift
with a
and
I
split
wrote
this struggle is or
from my heart, knowing that
between our personality (everyday
(infinite
spirit
it
or true
source,
how it holds us back.
without
This split
is
the
in our awareness that keeps us overly identified with the material
world and out
of touch
with our inherent
unfulfilled, better at surviving
spiritual nature. It
realize the personal crises
subtle level that
something dissatisfied
is
we
it
split,
barely feel
missing from our
it
We
at first.
lives.
We
with our relationships, but
doesn't
bothering
The
make us happy.
us— we
we
often don't
creates. Usually the distress begins on such a
we
feel
have vague feelings that
burned out
shrug
it off.
Maybe we
at
our jobs or
Something always
happens that keeps us from having enough money. Or it
keeps us
than thriving.
Because our culture doesn't teach us about the
but
self)
we
have money,
can't even identify
what
is
long for something more, but what?
distress of our inner split builds over the years to a point of crisis.
Health problems
may
surface.
Relationships
may
crumble. Financial
COMING HOME
8
may overwhelm
stress
about retirement.
we
We may feel trapped in our jobs or panicked
us.
We suffer a loss that we think we can't cope with. As
witness violence in the world,
after
perpetually unsafe. Or, even
feel
we've done and accomplished over the decades,
all
meaning. As we get older our
more
suspicion that there's
developed life
we
— can
creep closer.
if
we
A growing
to our potential than we've recognized or
— and fear that we may run out of time to
start dulling
Even
may
fear of death
lacks
life
our days and keeping us up
why
don't understand
signs that we're at a turning point.
live a
wholly
fulfilled
at night.
these crises are occurring, they are
We're ready to discover
a reality
we ever thought possible. In fact, we sense that we need this discovery, that we can't keep going the same way we have in the past.
greater than
Because this greater reality our intellect or
real to
to it
and doubting
it
we
up, that
Even
if
its
existence.
should drop
The
pull
is
we now
from our true spirit.
self.
of.
True it is
offers
have made profound
more expansive
us everything
Because true
unlimited well-being.
It
we want
level of
it.
the spirit that we, and
it
can't.
our source, the essence of
self is
intelligence of all creation, including us,
and
who
crave the next,
In fact,
made
we
and go back to our old ways. But
We feel a pull, and we have to follow
awakening.
beings, are
all
We may sometimes think we're making
we're seasoned spiritual seekers
our very being, our
and
it
unidentified potential to us, not yet
we may vacillate between being drawn
five senses,
breakthroughs already, spiritual
is still
all
things
the material and
self is
connects us with
all
creation
most, including unconditional love and
holds back nothing from us and asks nothing in
return.
True our
self is
with us
lives oblivious to
it.
at all times
Perhaps
because
it is
us, yet
we've lived most of
we have glimpsed it for brief periods but
have been unable to sustain that awareness through the nitty gritty of our lives. It if
we
becomes
learn
how
easier to recognize, trust,
and
to direct our awareness to
it
feel
supported by true
— and
if
we
self
are willing to
adopt a kinder, more compassionate and inclusive view of ourselves, others,
and the world.
It's
important that
we do this. Our individual lives,
as well as the world, are going through such
change and facing such
INTRODUCTION
challenge that to ourselves
we
need true
self's
expansive perspective to bring healing
and to our planet.
In the pages ahead, beginning with true
self, I
my own
story of
awakening
to
share perceptions and techniques for living consciously in the
greater reality of true
self.
and integrate the two and true
19
This book
realities
is
designed to help us identify, love,
our culture has held separate: personality
self.
By embracing the personality, yet also expanding beyond to the unlimited love, guidance,
we can
Coming Home was
it
and creative power of true self, thrive.
published in 1993. To make the spiritual
first
concepts even more practical and usable, this edition contains updates absent in editions earlier than 2010 subjects
I
love:
Sounding (using vocal sounds to open to true
Nothing (or void, or emptiness).
you
— plus more information about two
I
also have continued
self)
My Stoiy
in the surprising journey true self orchestrated for
and the
to include
me between
1993
and 2010. In the Self Love chapter a process
I
become one
Me.
call Sweet
of
my most
and gently beyond the
I
I
have added one of
developed
it
my favorite true
several years ago,
of
it
and
it
has
effective tools for helping people to reach easily
personality's habituated patterns of suffering to
tap the unwavering compassion and well-being of true
writing a
self tools,
self. I
new book about Sweet Me, and I am happy to be
here so you can start using
have begun
sharing some
it.
In Creating Your World: Abundance and Manifesting,
natural flow of abundance and our participation with
I
talk about the
it.
In recent years
there has been a bursting forth of information about the law of attraction
and other abundance attracts
like.
We
practices, including the following concepts: Like
attract people, things, and circumstances that match our vibration
Our outer state is a reflection of our inner state. The secret to creating outer abundance is
creating an inner state of abundance.
We can
magnetize to us the things we want by
COMING HOME
20
using affirmations, visualization, and gratitude. Feeling the joy of already having the things I
we want can hasten
those things to
am
agree with and
material
I
come
across
us.
inspired
by
a great deal of the
—but often there
consider to be essential because, to me, attraction
and abundance practices
choose a different term than true Source, or something that feels I
think true
self (or
it is
(perhaps
it
is
spirit)
and very temporary,
true
self.
we receive from that practice will we thought it would.
Most
self,
you).
needs to be center stage in
the source of
results.
You might
God, higher
Spirit,
abundance practice that does not engage us with limited,
I
the foundation of the law of
more personally meaningful to
your term for
abundance practice because
an omission of one element
is
in general:
self
abundance
abundance.
all
An
spirit is likely to yield
significantly, the
abundance
not give us the unwavering well-being
True self is our being at the
level
of creation,
where the abundance we seek already exists
and everything already
In true self
source
we
we hope
visualization,
are
abundance.
true self
is
at all
Our
self!
at
it is
true self
that
we
don't have to create an inner
—we can simply drop into the one we already
personality believes in and experiences lack; our
self
abundance opens us to the abundant world
long for but have been missing. is
We are spirit and creation. We are the
abundance. Giving our personality tools for recognizing and
experiencing true
practice
us.
and gratitude.
abundance
have in true
available to
will respond to our abundance-based affirmations,
Another way to look state of
is
that our personality
— and
is
To me, the beauty
becomes aware that
held in the embrace of true
self
it is
of an
abundance
co-creating with
while doing
The personality directs our instinct for surviving; true self carries our blueprint for thriving.
we
it!
INTRODUCTION
As you open
may
emotions
maybe
to yourself in a
new way
while reading this book,
occasionally surface that you have not yet fully explored or
didn't even
know were
there. If this happens, take
and get the support you need. You might want to
yourself,
21
good care
of
talk to close
friends or to a pastoral counselor such as a minister or rabbi.
You might
consider joining a support group or finding a good therapist
who
can
guide you through your feelings. Be sensitive to your needs. Getting
comfort and support from trustworthy sources during times of change essential.
because
I
it is
is
have mentioned this a few more times throughout book important. Having a well cared for and healthy personality
that feels nurtured and safe enables you to stabilize amidst rapid growth
and to open to deeper levels
of spiritual experience.
To help you put new information meditations and what
I
call
to practical use,
I
have provided
throughout the book. The
attunancnts
attunements are ways to direct your awareness as you go about your
—ways that you can tune into a deeper
day
your everyday times
even as you remain at
The meditations
level of consciousness.
when you can
reality
are intended for
take several minutes and allow yourself a longer
period of inner exploration without being involved in any free to personalize these
activity. Feel
attunements and meditations, using your
own
wording, imagery, or personal focus.
Some
of the material in this
each chapter,
I
book
will touch
encourage you to write
you deeply. As you read
down any insights
or Aha's while
they are fresh. They are likely to be meaningful to you for years to come.
To
get the richest, juiciest benefit from the book,
Coming Home reading group so you can discuss
who
like-minded folks
it
I
suggest forming a
chapter-by-chapter with
share your interest in personal growth and
The discussion can enhance your understanding of the information presented here and help you apply it more deeply to your spiritual unfolding.
life— as well as give you group support for living from your true
Group support into
as
Form chapter,
we
is
a powerful resource.
we began
adapted to groups
As you
self.
will read in the Journey
losing our awareness of true self early in
life
of people: family, friends, school, religious
communities, and society in general. Reclaiming our true
self
awareness
22
COMING HOME
with the support of
a trustworthy group, even a small one, is especially
strengthening and can improve our relationship with the world.
A special healing takes place when we regain in a group that which
we once lost in a group.
Being genuinely supported and celebrated by a group as you open to
your true
self
can repattern your personality to
welcomes you and that there the world after
all.
That in
really is a place for itself
freedom, safety, and belonging.
holding yourself back
— and
to
It
now
feel that
you
— the
the world
you
true
— in
can be a breakthrough to greater
might be just what you need to stop
move
full
steam ahead into a
life
of
purpose and passion.
When your group discusses the chapters that tell my story, reflecting
I
suggest
on the ways you have experienced inner guidance, or times your
connection with true
self
has opened
new
doors and led you into
enriching territory you hadn't expected.
You might not be
enough
credit for those experiences, or
you may have forgotten some of
them.
found that as
and
I
my
life
I
wrote those chapters,
expanded. As you look at your
my life
giving yourself
appreciation for myself this
way, the same can
happen for you. This book of peace
is for
you.
As you read
and well-being that
is
it,
your true
may you
experience a deep sense
self.
With love, Martia Nelson*
'Martia
is
pronounced like Marsha.
Parti
9
MY STORY I
Begin the Return
1
Opening In 1984
from that
a place
me
deep within
was going
I
my life.
heard a voice that changed
I
that
to have to change
It
was my
had never known
I
but
voice,
came
it
me
existed. It told
my workaholic lifestyle or I was going
to die. I
was 34
had spent the
years old and
successful career
growth center
loved.
I
— as
seven years immersed in a
was co-owner and
I
well
last
director of a personal
an instructor of the acupressure and
as
therapeutic massage curriculum taught there to students in professional
My
training.
range of
unusual work combination allowed
my personality: my business
me
competitiveness,
to express a full
my creativity,
and
my desire to communicate with people at a deeply nurturing level. I loved my work, but I had become addicted to it with an intensity I could not control.
working, so
I
I
worked evenings and weekends, and when
was thinking about work.
stopped taking them.
I
together,
my
was
reaction
first
When
I
I
wasn't
could no longer relax on vacations
friends called to suggest getting
irritation that they
wanted
to intrude
on
my work time. rarely
I
work
that the
me. But
was
I
I
but
I
rarely felt well either.
had devoted
my
life
to
was now
I
should have noticed
draining the
life
kept going, until the inner voice spoke and I was able to
happened
It
sick,
in an acupressure session
Aminah Raheem, who had been one and exhaustion,
I
of
lay fully clothed
I
was
my teachers.
Aminah put
a reassuring
I
felt a
hand on
my body
and
woman,
table as she
me
to help
discomfort, like anxiety, in
my belly
listen.
Suffering from stress
on Aminah's massage
gently held a series of acupressure points on
Half an hour into the session
receiving from a
out of
said,
"What
my
surprise
relax.
my belly.
your belly
is
saying to you?" I
was about
belly's
message.
to say,
don't know," but to
was
It
misinterpretation as
"I
I
spoke
you are doing and learn
a
clear it
and
definite,
out loud: "If
new way
with
no
you do not stop
knew my
I
room
all
the
to live, you are going to die."
It
for
work went
COMING HOME
26
on to explain, "You
work
are ready for
that takes you to a deeper level of
connecting with people. To find this work, you must stop what you are
doing now. You are so depleted that
if
you do not stop, you will die
within a year in an accident or in 20 years from cancer."
As
emerged
revelation
this
On
simultaneous, reactions.
and wailing
my body felt
my body was
of death,
anything
as
I
had ever felt
Yet, at the
one
had two
I
level
distinctly
was shocked.
I
I
but
different,
started sobbing
the impact of the message. Facing the reality
with
filled
fear
and
grief
more powerful than
before.
same time, there was
deep within
a place
me
was
that
completely calm and well, untouched by any of the emotion. At that level
was no worry, no
there
fear,
grace and peace beyond
all
no disturbance whatsoever. distress
I
might
feel. I
It
was
a core of
realized the message
was coming from this inner core and everything it was saying was
true.
Then the message concluded: "Very few people have the opportunity to witness the beginning of their death.
whether I
my
know it
at the time,
personality and true
while accepting true
self's
but this was
By
self.
my first
my
me for a couple weeks,
my new work would be, that time, life.
often
I
In giving
for almost decade.
to live.
And
I
life. I
to that point, the
while
me
I
I
—
or,
I
most important and
With my
I
had no idea what
more than
I
relinquished an identity
had no idea how
a year.
During
"fit." It
was
as
accurately,
ever,
I
would
I
my
had clung
get the
money
I
let
old friendships drop,
though everything that had been
had made me
real
— had
real to myself
to hold onto anymore.
external world in such change,
to
me continuity or comfort.
a love relationship to give
more
become too vaporous
was
insecure and afraid as a result of letting go of
needed support more than
before
I
my work.
lived in free-fall for
Each month
no longer
personality
After letting that session reverberate
quit
up my work
was without
feeling they
to
felt
so
my
greater state of unwavering well-being,
That decision was a huge leap into the unknown.
"old"
make about
experience of both
feeling the distress of
make what was perhaps, up
well-informed decision of
within
a choice to
this is yours."
didn't
able to
You have
I
began looking within
MY STORY
and
into the thoughts, feelings,
The
life.
had been driving me
beliefs that
details of this inner landscape
were fuzzy
all
but
at first,
I
27
my felt
my most
pulled to keep looking. Before long, old pain surfaced as
distressing childhood experiences presented themselves to me, desperate for release.
My
mother had been an
alcoholic
who
could turn from
genuinely loving and supportive to verbally vindictive in an instant. father
room
had been
I
relived
memories of the physical abuse and emotional
was flooded with old at a time,
feelings of fear, shame,
an unrelenting ache in
With
unlovable and alone.
through lonely hours of
what was happening. more
fulfilling life
of the
most
In the midst of
my
chest reminded
7
All inner injur} that
named Linda who did
me
that
I still
felt
slowly came to terms with
I
had kept me from having
painful, frightening,
significant periods of
my
I
the help of skilled body/mind therapists, and
my own processing,
was
isolation,
and helplessness. For weeks
was now demanding my
healed. This process
was one
who yelled and shoved me around the family sometimes pinning me to the wall or the floor.
a rageaholic
several times a year,
As
My
attention so
a
could be
it
and time-consuming, yet
it
my life.
soul-searching, a friend told "intuitive readings," in
me
about a
woman
which she communicated
information from her higher guidance to help people in their spiritual
growth. In the hope of getting greater perspective on what through,
I
I
was going
made an appointment for a reading.
Linda's technique
was
simple. She closed her eyes,
went
into a light
meditation, and asked for higher guidance, inviting a greater perspective
based in love and wisdom to come through fascinating,
and the information
recognized at a deep aspects of
level.
From her
The
received from her
session
made me
was feel
greater perspective, Linda described
my spirit that I had sensed but had never been able to put into
clear thoughts or words. too,
I
her.
Toward the end of the
could receive higher guidance directly,
sitting for ten minutes, three times a day,
session she told
if I
chose
to.
me that I,
She suggested
with the intention of quietly
listening.
The suggestion that I could directly receive information from a higher source surprised me.
I
had assumed very few people could do
this,
only
COMING HOME
28
who were
those
gifted
had never thought
me
of trying
Now being told
it.
that
had never
I
myself
let
sense that
had
feel.
had
I
work, so
for this special
I
could have contact with
I
expanded knowledge and unconditional love
a source of in
and somehow chosen
much
lived
stirred a longing
my
of
something deep within.
life
with
had
a
to do
buried
grief, a
with
vague memory of spiritual family, a family that extended beyond
a
knew and
I
lost
even beyond the physical realm.
the people
I
somewhere
in this greater connectedness
longed to find emotion;
it
was
My
it.
weeks
was
getting nowhere.
me I
could do this
patiently, then
if I
I
that I
went beyond
it
Home.
and
listening as Linda
had suggested,
frustrated
and disappointed.
Why did she tell
of sitting felt
felt
I
true source, and
from
grief at feeling separated
a spiritual yearning for
After a few
was my
It
couldn't?
I
I
phoned her and complained. She listened
checked in with her guidance. "You're not ready," she
reported back. I
hit the ceiling. "If I'm not ready,
did you
tell
me
I
could do something
why did you get my hopes up? Why I
can't do?"
I
wanted
to experience
the contact so much. "It's is
not that you can't do
You're just not quite ready because there
it.
something you're blocking," Linda said gently. I
started to say, "I'm not blocking anything!" but before
the words out, tears streamed
"Oh,
I
know,
it's
down my
face,
and
that I'm going to have to move,"
listen, it's clear that
my deeper
self
needs
me
to
a I
new
I
could get
clarity emerged.
told Linda. "If
move out
I
really
of the area.
I'll
Home is
leave this house that I've lived in for so long
and loved so much.
so important to me.
me to leave." The barrier was
It's
the hardest thing for
broken.
2
Truth
we block things we don't want to hear because of the conflict we'll feel. Yet in turning to higher guidance we ask for the truth. To the degree we want to expand beyond our previous limitations, Often in our daily
lives
MY STORY
we our
long for lives,
it.
we
But to the degree
resist the truth
often equaled
we
and
want control over the
still
The
29
details of
toward truth
is
by our resistance to it. Our ambivalence is our reluctance
to
fear its touch.
pull
choose between empowerment and control.
When the truth touches us, every structure in our lives that was built on nontruth is destined for change. When I let in the truth about needing to move away, I finally allowed truth to touch me. My house was my last my
holdout, the last tangible symbol of
my grasp on the house, guiding me was beyond my control, loosening
I
old self
I still
clung
In finally
to.
recognized that the inner power
and
its
being beyond
my control was
me forward. I knew then that my safety was in my trust of this powerful source, not in my efforts to control it. could propel
the very reason it
I
also realized that higher guidance doesn't "impose" an
agenda but
simply offers information and options that support our highest good. Listening to our inner source of higher guidance (true its
self)
and following
we surrender our free will or override when we use it properly, higher guidance
suggestions never require that
our better judgment. Rather,
helps us open to our deepest, most empowering truth and integrate into our daily living.
Our
challenge
inner truth; only then are
to give
is
up our tendency
to
it
deny our
we really free to follow it. 3
Personality and True Self
For the
first
shoots of
year
new
my contact with higher guidance was like tender young
growth.
I
felt
vulnerable and protective, sharing
happened with very few people.
I
was
would judge me
as
took time every day to close
my
that old friends
afraid
I
what
wouldn't be believed or
unworthy
of such a precious
experience. I
assistance in every aspect of
my
life.
eyes and
sit quietly,
asking for
The response was amazing. An
expanded, inner panorama of awareness opened to me.
I
was given
a
deeper view of each situation, one that was loving and revealed a purpose greater than
I
had been
able to see with
my
ordinary perception. Higher
COMING HOME
30
guidance spoke to
me with much greater compassion and kindness than I
— or than anyone
had ever given myself
My
personality
else
had ever given me.
was being re-parented by my
unconditional love and unwavering compassion
was being taught
as a child.
I
began to have greater self-compassion
I
my life more clearly, and to feel less afraid and alone.
than ever, to see
To my
a result
had missed
and the world through that
to see myself, others,
expanded perspective. As
I
true self with the
surprise, this higher guidance of true self kept
showing me
my life was really wrong! This was difficult for me to comprehend because my life seemed so obviously topsy-turvy, and my mind frequently told me was doomed. Yet true self patiently showed me the divinity, love, and hidden order in every situation, introducing me that nothing about
I
time and time again to the deeper perspective.
and I began to
truth,
One
of the
is
learn.
most helpful lessons was that
personality and true
our conscious
self.
self,
Most people
and
what we can and cannot do
life.
greater reality that cradles self,
we
in
call personality
and to keep
others,
True
on the other hand, patiently stands
self is
all
Personality
tight rules about
by,
a state of vibrant well-being
our unlimited
spirit; it sees
blinders into an unlimited reality that
which
ego.
Personality sees a small reality, not the
possibility is our true nature, a birthright that can so.
the
it.
unwavering knowledge that
do
live in split realities:
conditioned to see the world through the eyes of
limitation, to judge ourselves
True
My heart recognized this
is
offering the
and unlimited
be lived if we choose to
beyond the
personality's
the essence of creation and in
things are possible.
The term
true self is
not meant to imply that any part of who
false or unreal. All aspects of
experience, at the level at
our being are real to us in our
which we perceive them, and they
value.
True
of its
expanded nature no matter what
lives,
and no matter what our personality
self refers to
we are is
the aspect of our being that
we may is
is
human all
have
completely aware
be experiencing in our
thinking, feeling, or doing.
MY STORY
31
True self is undiminished by the personality 's suffering
and always
sees the bigger picture.
my true self, I sensed when I was drawing awareness from that source and when I was not. I realized that my true self had been within me all my life, quietly guiding me along, yet I had not identified with it. My identity had been with my personality. The feelings, beliefs, and expectations of my personality had been my yardstick for measuring my success, safety, sanity, and personal wellbeing. The problem had been that my personality only saw the smaller As I became more aware
of
picture and operated entirely from conditioning and past experience.
Now was in a bind. My personality told me to tighten control of my I
life.
It
new things my growth, showing me that
was panicked by
rejoiced in
the
was
I
I
doing. Yet
my
true self
had changed the direction
of
my life at every level as an entry into something greater. Often my personality invalidated the information received through my true's self guidance, and I was challenged to choose which source to I
So for months
believe.
I
lived
with
both realities
and
their apparently
me ultimately impossible odds. And in
conflicting information. Magically, everything true self told
turned out to be true, even against seemingly spite of die,
my
personality's repeated warnings,
and did not end up crazy or
did not go broke, did not
alone. Instead,
shifted to incorporate true self into
to
I
my identity,
me new way
something within
and
I
learned a
live.
4
My Search The turning point came through Because
it
was my
a rite of passage tailor-made for me.
area of greatest resistance— my personality's last
stand— the drama unfolded around needed to move,
where but
I
I
I
would be
packed most going.
I
of
leaving
my
house. After
I
realized
I
belongings and tried to figure out
new home was waiting for me, My inner guidance told me that tracking
sensed that a
couldn't quite sense where.
my
32
COMING HOME
my new home would strengthen me and teach me a new way of living. After I had agonized over my dilemma for a few months, the name of a specific town popped into my mind, out of the blue, during a light meditation.
knew
it
I
set off for that area a
was home. Finding
the right house
looked at was definitely mine. wait to move
few days
made an
I
later
was
and when
I
arrived,
I
one
I
easy; the third
offer right
away and
couldn't
in.
My
Everything was perfect.
offer
was
accepted.
The bank
said there
would be no problem with my loan. I put my old house on the market and
was confident
it
would
sell
few short weeks
quickly. In a
I
would
the crowded city and settle in the country where everything
Cows would
live across the street
from me!
I
was
was
leave
green.
delighted with where
my intuition was taking me at last. Then the trouble a mistake
started.
The bank
less attractive
As the deadline
my loan. that, my house
On
top of
for
buying
my new house
tell
me
the situation
me. The realtor trying to
sell
my
representing
me
tried to prepare I
in buying the
me
selling,
for the
approached, things looked
was
impossible. Banks told
old house told me. Even the realtor
new house
told me. Well-meaning friends
disappointment they saw coming. That was
learned to hate the often-heard "spiritual" axiom:
doing what's really
wasn't
houses nearby sold within days.
grim. People began to
when
me they had made Round and round we
and told
and could not possibly approve
went; they wouldn't budge.
though
called
right,
"When
you're
everything happens easily and effortlessly." (I'm
now that that is not always true!) I was torn inside. For the first time in my life I had clearly heard the intuitive voice of my true self, recognized it as real, and followed it by here to say
taking major action based on
its
guidance.
I
had chosen the expansive
reality of true self over the restrictive reality of
made the
personality.
I
had
shift.
The planned move anything had ever certainty.
my
felt.
to
my
house
felt
so deeply right,
real?
right than
Yet outer events clearly contradicted that inner
My confidence was shaken. Was
guidance being
more
Did
this
I
fooling myself about true self
mean I could never really trust myself again?
MY STORY
my
At
consulted true
I
"Of course that's your
instantly:
you will
wit's end,
Do
live there.
third time
my
and cancel
guidance has told that."
Who
Finally
my
offer
work
that
it's all
What
appears to be most
out."
me we
realtor called to tell
knows what
we
You found your home, and
house.
on the new house,
me
Peace and clarity came
self.
not give up on yourself.
real often isn't. Everything will
The
new
33
was
I
should admit defeat
clear.
going to work, and
said,
I
I
"My
higher
have confidence in
she thought, but she didn't argue anymore.
found a way to
and
satisfy the bank's concerns,
my
loan
got last-minute approval. At eight o'clock on the night before the
and quickly from then that
my
someone bought
deadline,
move came my
beckoned
me
on,
first
for so long.
firmly planted
old house. Everything happened smoothly
and
soon moved into
I
tangible step into the
had crossed
I
on new ground,
over,
my new
new
home. With
had
territory that
and with
at least
one foot
my journey Home had truly begun. 5
The Overview
Why
had
my
transition been so difficult?
move into new
my
true self (through
resistance within
degree
my
To the degree
house). I
it
I
opened to true
my
self, I
found
my way. And to and
personality's old beliefs
While
simple, though only hindsight allowed
lost in the
had been the
to
drama
I
had been blind much
moment but unable
challenge, the true test.
choosing greater truth and acting on self
clarity of
personality (through the outer obstacles with the
my way moment
picture. Yet that
with true
had manifested the
I
the
fears
my outer way was obstructed.
that way.
time, feeling
a
intuition, or inner guidance) as well as the
The dynamics had been see
realities,
allowed the Hmitations of
to restrict me,
had been going through
consciousness. Because part of my transition had included
the experience of living in split
my
I
it
of the
to see the bigger
Those moments of
had strengthened
and had kept me on my path.
me to
my
alignment
COMING HOME
34
6
Seeing
After
I
had made the move
my new house, my reality expanded in leaps people rediscover their true self became my
to
and bounds. Helping other
new work. Through the process profound truths about
life
of guiding them,
witnessed and learned
I
and the unlimited being
new
myself and others with this
all are.
opened worlds of
sight
my
me. The chapters ahead hold
we
Seeing
possibilities to
but timeless,
favorites of those early,
insights.
Those insights began coming in 1985 when coaching sessions for
I
started doing
people asked about their
clients. In these sessions,
greatest personal issues: happiness, purpose, work, relationships, on.
They wanted
life
and so
dynamics
a bigger picture that illuminated the spiritual
underlying their struggles and provided a more loving, compassionate
They longed
perspective for viewing themselves. celebrated for
who
seeing, as Linda
had done
for
ways
of
my greatest joys.
a meditative state
and open
expanded perspective of
it
simple:
my
itself.
Take
a
to the person
few moments
a deeper
it
unwavering love and well-being, which
— our
self.
As
I
came
did that, an
I
I
received that
my body
every level as a I
to drop into
simultaneously
absorbed into at
self
had never known or
I
— and
being. For the entire session,
natural, essential nature
with
Doing that became one
For an hour or more
becoming part of me
my
to look
awareness to true
profound wisdom and beauty of
throughout
their lives.
spiritual information
perceived before presented
information and spoke
was
seen and
feel
me, and help them experience their true
My original technique was
personality,
My job
would enrich and expand
in
that
they truly were.
to
full
was bathed
felt
the
and
my
imprint
in a flow of
to recognize as our
most
true self state. This flow of expanded
information and loving well-being taught
me
as
much
as
it
taught
my
clients. I
called this technique true
as a clear channel to true self's
self channeling
because
I
was opening myself
expanded perspective. Relating
to people
MY STORY
through
true self channeling
the "deeper
massage
way
territory for me.
At
last
I
understood
me on Amman's
with people" foretold to
of connecting
and speaking engagements quickly followed, and
table. Classes
found that
was new
got the same deep, spiritual education no matter
I
where I channeled true
my work was
evolving over the years, and I
when
I
or
self.
Because the nature of
than two decades,
35
I
learned and grew with
have acquired
to true self channeling, so
I
dynamic and
so
a
wide range
my
refer to
Now,
it.
kept
alive, it
after
more
of techniques in addition
sessions
with the umbrella term
coaching: private coaching, life coaching, or true self
coaching
— they are
interchangeable terms to me. love
I
all
that
I
do. Yet the true self channeling continues to be the
technique that reveals
new
more helpful than anything ordinary state of awareness 7
information consistently richer, deeper, and I
my
could have thought of in
personality's
—while providing the "missing piece
11
needed
by the person for whom I am channeling. For example, one
moving forward
in
woman came
my life like
been pushing myself to look Every time
I
I
should.
my feet in
I
me
saying, "I'm stuck. I'm not
hate
my job,
and
for
months
I've
new one, but I'm not following through.
for a
think of job hunting,
nothing. I'm dragging
to
I
immediately lose energy and do
other areas, too. What's
wrong with me
that I'm so stuck?" I
closed
my
eyes and opened to true
instantly appeared,
was
showing that
this
self.
woman was
An
inner panorama
not stuck at
all:
She
waiting. In the image, she stood with her toes touching, but not
crossing, a line dividing her
leaving and the one she yet because she
into
was about
two
territories,
would help
new territory.
of her life in the territory she
was
leaving
had been
overwhelmed by
she didn't deserve much, and always having a schedule so
demanding that
was about
was
moving forward
shift that
surviving: struggling hard but just getting by, being crises, feeling
the one she
to enter. She wasn't
was waiting to complete an internal
her to succeed in her
The focus
life
it
depleted her. The focus of her
to enter
would be
life
in the territory she
thriving: regularly feeling ease, happiness,
COMING HOME
36
abundance,
compassion,
goodness through
While
creativity,
and the flow
peace,
safety,
her.
transitioning from the struggle
living to the vibrant well-being of thrival
and
suffering of survival based
based
living,
was pausing to
she
give her personality time to develop a stronger taproot into true
needed to get used to feelings of true force
— and
carry
it.
into her
self
self
new
was
well-being
to
She
become her
new energy circuits to new fuel, propelling her
and then guiding and sustaining
territory
self.
well-being as her new, driving
her personality needed to develop
True
of
Rushing
her.
forward too soon, before her personality had become rooted in that wellbeing,
would have caused her
hadn't been able to see
Her inner
it,
her deeper
would
shift
to run out of fuel.
Although her personality
wisdom had been making her wait.
perception,
which needed
of survival
and more oriented to the vibrant well-being
changing jobs because jobs because
I
choose
don't deserve ease.
I
I
to
hate
"I
less oriented to the struggle
my
more
enjoy and deserve ease. I'm
would become
be
fulfilling
feel
old job"
work
at
drawn
to
and
self-
suffering
of thrival. "I'm
would become
"I'm changing
in a supportive environment."
home with
like feeling in the
others to gain well-being"
and
also bring changes to her thinking
it."
would become
struggle"
"Life is hard,
flow of
would become
open
I
"I
feel stuck"
please or impress
life." "I
"I
and
"I
to the well-being
always present within me." I
channeled this information, and more, to the
woman for
rang true to her, and helped her to trust and appreciate talked another half hour about left
the
session
an hour.
herself.
how she would apply the information.
with new self-confidence,
well-being,
clarity,
It
We She
and
practical tools to help her thrive.
True
self
channeling
is
a joyous experience for me.
I
feel
the most
balanced while channeling than at any other time or in any other
activity.
For the entire period I'm channeling, the pure love and well-being of true self
stream through me, bathing
everyone and everything
— our
me
being
within. Unity, our Oneness with
one source
—
is real
to
me and
seems
the most natural perception in the world.
Not only does true
self
channeling help
me
to reveal new,
expanded
MY STORY
perspectives to clients and students, spiritual education.
whether the channeling
comes through me channeling state
is
not
self
who we
my
things every time
all
the information as
I
channeling also keeps showing
we
are;
nerves in the
are always more.
with mine
I
am
While the information
new
session but wouldn't quite
tell
me what
I
deeply
it.
that our personality
is
given this lesson whenever a
One man
criticizing things in
Then he wanted
before he had even sat down.
concepts;
channel
me
For me, the
it.
(yes, this happens!).
two minutes by
first
channel, regardless of
I
experience the reality of
I
not just an openness to
client's personality clashes
on
remains my primary source of
for others or myself.
is
in words,
perceive and experience
True
new
learn
I
it
37
it
my
got
office
a very7 specific focus to his
was.
I
him block me
felt
at
every turn.
Exasperated,
considered referring him to someone
else. Instead,
I
followed an intuitive feeling to go ahead with the session. As soon as
I
I
opened to true deepened, and
I
self
channeling, everything shifted.
no longer saw
from the deep pain of having he carried within. relating to
him
It felt
as
a difficult person.
lost
I
saw
My
this
perspective
man
suffering
touch with the amazing beauty and love
natural then to address
him with love and honor,
he truly was rather than as his personality presented
him.
Conscious,
true
experience
self
personality that I'm in
it
when I remember to
effects in
my life.
are
all
not
so
integrated
continuously throughout
available
Its
is
choose
most precious
it,
my
day, but
and I increasingly see
gift to
into
its
my it's
positive
me has been the lesson that we
more than we appear to be.
7
Sounding
A
year into working with clients,
happened. As
I
impulse to open
would be
I
something surprising suddenly
turned inward to channel true
self, I
started feeling an
my mouth and make nonverbal sounds. What the sounds
had no
idea,
but the impulse was strong and persistent.
I
COMING HOME
38
resisted a
few times, not wanting to appear foolish or weird to
and finally asked true
"Go with
it,
and
self
when I was alone. Make the sounds, even
about
trust
it.
my clients,
it
if
for only a
few
seconds, and explain to your clients that you're just trying something
new," was the message
I
received. "Follow the sounds. They're taking
you
somewhere." So did
I
did what true
my few
self suggested.
I
felt
awkward and embarrassed as I
seconds of sounding for clients before the verbal channeling.
People were receptive, and no one seemed to be judging
time
me but me. With
gained confidence and allowed the sounding to continue longer, up
I
to five minutes or more.
To
better understand
when I was the world
alone. It
what was happening,
was then I began
was opening
it
to me.
everything, everything, in our
We whole
humans
is
sounding
most
are such visual creatures that
realized that
is less
of us can go our
we
see.
reality:
We
predominantly by what
seems second to visual
believing." Audible reality
unconsciously believe there
I
world is sound.
lives defining physical reality
"Seeing
my
for myself
sound and to experience
to love the
Through
sounded
also
I
to hear in the
world than to
see.
I
was
beginning to perceive differently.
As
made
I
sounded,
it
perceived that not only
is
everyone and everything
of sound, but that everyone and everything emanates
everywhere!
mean
I
I
mean
don't
its
sound
all the time,
that everyone and everything creates sound;
that everyone and everything
is
I
sound and emanates the sound that
is.
Every blade of grass,
tree, cloud, rock, flower,
as well as every inanimate object in the
the sound
it
is.
vibrational range
The
we
unaware that they ears
consciously hear, so
are as present
sounding sessions,
inward to true
self,
is
our bodies
sound and emanates
opened
I
we move
around us as
air.
through the world
Over the millennia, our
register only the miniscule range of
sounds directly related to our physical
my
—
cell in
vast majority of those sounds are outside the
and brains have evolved to
In
world
and
survival.
closed
my
eyes,
turned
my
awareness
my mouth, and let sounds come through me
MY STORY
much the way I
received
words
in true self channeling. Surrendered to
and creative process,
intuitive
They came
could.
I
an
wasn't consciously controlling or
I
directing the sounds. Impulses to sound in specific
me, and I followed them as best
39
I
called the
ways gently guided
sounds
true self sounds.
in spontaneous, unpredictable sequences that
were not
consistent enough to be called chanting. They also lacked the melody or
organization of song.
making one sound, one would
be, or
I
I
saw no
logical patterns. In fact, while
had no idea how long
where they
all
were
and allowed the orchestration to unfold in
The range and loud,
its
I
I
lost to
was not used
stayed in the
ready to be reactivated the instant
words or
still
moment
and
quiet, strong
and more. Sometimes
some but not
to making. Often they
us over the ages that
original language before
liked
I
what the next
own mysterious way.
lovely, enticing, rough, unpolished, odd,
were sounds
last,
of sounds varied greatly: high, low, soft
they were rhythmic, sometimes not.
sounds
would
it
leading. So
was
I
others;
most
seemed ancient,
like
linger as vibrational memories,
we open
to them. "This
intellect developed"
was
was our
a phrase that
came to me frequently. Even more profound to me than the way the sounds sounded was the
way
they
felt.
All of them, even the softest
and
quietest, even the ones
thought didn't sound "good", created vibrations that pleasurable as they
moved through me.
instrument being played by true
The bones
My
body
felt
I
purposeful and
felt like
a musical
self.
my face
in the right side of
might \ibrate with one sound,
my skull might vibrate with the next one. Then it might be both sides of my face, or the back of my throat, or my chest, or my belly, or my left hip. I never knew which part of my body would be "played" next and then
because
I
never
knew what
the next sound
would
be,
but
it
all felt
glorious.
As
in all
my work,
personality simply
own being— true sounding
at
was
self,
me
or the sounds.
My
relinquishing direction to a deeper aspect of
my
no one
else
of course.
any point,
much
was
I
controlling
could have stopped or changed the
the
way we can
stop or change a
spontaneous song, poem, or painting we're creating. Yet, as often
is
the
40
COMING HOME
case with such creative processes, the sounding
come through without expressiveness,
my
worked best when
I
deep
interfering. In a state of surrender to a
personality kept
its
hands
off the steering
let it
wheel
as
much as possible and went along for the marvelous ride.
My personal
sounding sessions began lasting longer, usually 10 to 20
minutes but sometimes 45 minutes to an hour. They always
presented
itself internally as
channeling. Usually facing,
and nourished.
balanced,
enlivened,
feeling
it
gave
but occasionally
usually long ago. for sure.
me
sounded,
much
felt real
and
I
it
information
did during verbal
a bigger picture for a personal issue
was
I
experienced vignettes from other lifetimes,
me
to
as
I
or other people's
I
cant
sounded, complete with emotion,
spiritual perspective.
They always increased
understanding of my life and of life in general, so
By sounding
as
Whether they were my lifetimes
They
visual images,
I
I
Expansive
me
left
I
my
was deeply grateful.
discovered that nonverbal sound can cam' far more
information than verbal language. In verbal language, information
presented linearly, one
word
write, read, or listen to
all
linear. It is
happens
all at
information,
and
it
those words. True
self
sound, however,
once. True self
all
takes time to speak
after the other,
multidimensional and outside time:
A
lot
not
happens, and
sound is jam-packed with multiple
if
we
have
five
it
levels of
concepts to communicate verbally,
speak or write them one at a time: and to communicate
them
is
communicated simultaneously and instantly.
For example,
organize
is
into a sequence in
which each concept
effectively,
we we
leads logically to
the next. But those same five concepts communicated through true self
sound are presented
all at
once in a
cluster.
Even richer than
that, the
emotional visceral visual (mental images), intellectual and spiritual experiences of all five concepts are presented simultaneously, in seconds.
complex information a
is
Or
in a split second. This
transmitted as a whole. Information "sounded" in
minute might take 30 minutes or an hour to speak
version
would lack the depth
— and
still
of experiential imprint that
the spoken
comes with
true self sound.
TV program on PBS about whales. was hear this aspect of my sounding experience
One day while watching surprised and delighted to
a
I
MY STORY
apparently confirmed by science.
"We now
can measure the amount of
information communicated in whale songs," saying.
"We
I
can't decipher the content yet, so
are saying to each other, but
we
can
minute whale song conveys approximately Homer's
remember the researcher
we
can't tell what
whales
how much they are saying.
tell
41
as
much
A
30-
information as
T/ie Iliad."
In addition to using true self sound to gain expansive information and
awareness, true
self's
I
sound for the most
practical reasons. Sounding tethers
unwavering well-being no matter where
in traffic, tense
and anxious because
I
home
left
I
am.
When I'm stuck
and
now am getting
late
even later by the minute, doing just three breaths of true
and calms me. Or
drive instantly soothes
sound
for the brief time
to create inner balance
One
client
it
taught to do true
I
self
self
sounds as
I
in the morning, doing true self
takes to put on
and harmony that
me to
my slippers
affects
and robe
is
enough
me the whole day.
sounding got creative using
it.
A
self-described "extremely analytical person" prone to multi-tasking her
way through her day,
she had been uncomfortable meditating because she
couldn't quiet her mind.
preamble to meditating
Then she
— sounding
became quiet and peaceful
for a
few minutes
first
life,
— and her mind
found that during
in meditation. She also
periods of increased stress in her a
started doing true self sounding as a
sounding for even just two minutes
day made her life noticeably more peaceful and enjoyable.
As
a small business
employee issues or
sales challenges.
Sounding helped her with problem owner, she sometimes faced
When
she
felt
stuck, she
difficult
solving, too.
would hold the problem
"Within
a day,
figured out in
me
feel
calm and open to new
an answer always comes to
me
mind
for a
to ten minutes. "The
moment; then she would release it and sound for five sounding makes
in her
ideas," she told
that
I
me.
never would have
my usual, analytical approach."
Perhaps the reason true
self
sounding
ways ranging from the most expansive
is
to the
energetically integrates the vibrations of true personality's limited consciousness.
so potent,
most
self's
and
assists
us in
practical, is that
it
unlimitedness into the
The sound comes from
a deeper level
than our beliefs or emotions and imprints the boundless knowing,
COMING HOME
42
unconditional love, and unwavering well-being of true
the
self into
personality's reality.
8
YourTrue
appeals to you,
If it
guidance in your
I
Self
Channeling and Sounding
invite
you to tune into your true
own way.
inner, intuitive voice
It
— and
may be
sitting quietly
then speaking
messages in your journal. Or
it
and
loving
self's
listening for that
out loud or writing
it
may be through
its
creative expression such
as dancing, painting, singing, or playing a musical instrument.
At the end started.
As with
of this chapter, there are meditations to help all
suggestions in this book, use
most empowering and balancing
words or formats work better
other
however: True
and it If
feel
for you,
and
you
bad about yourself or your feelings
you to take
if
There are two constants,
own choices and common sense.
you receive information that scares you,
ill
make changes
guidance always comes with love and empowerment,
self's
never overrides
conveys
them in whatever way is
feel free to
for you.
you get
life,
criticizes you,
disempowers you in any way, or
about other people or the world
specific action
—
it
is
makes you
NOT
— or
if it
coming from true
pressures
The
self.
personality thinks that way, but true self does not.
If
that happens,
recognize that your personality has been activated and
is
trying to help,
but that
its
perspective
is
too limited to be truly helpful.
Do not reject your personality any more than you would reject year-old child for telling you
how
self drives.
two-
to drive a car. Imagine that you help
your personality into a special child's seat in the back ride as a cherished passenger
a
seat,
where
it
can
and look out the window while your true
Then, remember that true
self is deeper, wiser,
and more
loving than the personality, and invite your true self to guide you. True self
sees
everyone
and
appreciation. All of true
diminish
it.
everything
self's
with
love,
compassion,
and
guidance will increase your well-being, not
MY STORY
People
who do
these meditations often
want
43
to start getting "good"
information right away and become disappointed or frustrated
this
if
doesn't happen. Think of this process as turning on a faucet that has been
shut off for years. At drinking, but after
open to true Information
judgment do not
self
it
the water might be rusty, not ready for
first
has run for some time
may be
it
you
gets clear. Similarly, as
guidance, the flow might be "rusty" for quite a while.
may not make
— or
it
sense, or
may
it
clear, loving true self
carry your personality's
guidance that you simply
know how to use yet.
Be content to anything with
it,
usable for you. guidance, that
the guidance run through you, without doing
let
for as long as
And
is fine.
even
You
it
takes to
become
and
clear, supportive,
you never actually do anything with the
if
will be sitting in the flow of love, compassion,
and well-being while channeling; that
is
the most important part. That
love will be imprinting into your personality's consciousness and into the
and tissues in your body, and
cells life
at
some point it will emanate into your
to create greater love, compassion,
you do not think you
If
One
worry.
awareness
is
of
two
things
and well-being for you
are getting is
that, at
Your
any actual information, do not
probably happening:
not yet attuned to the subtlety of true
Continuing to practice over time will
some
point,
guidance
is
nonverbal, in
still
communication.
your awareness so
of the information. 2.)
which case
that you are not conscious of verbal content.
information
Your conscious
1.)
self's
likely attune
you will become conscious
style of receiving
there.
The
it is
natural
loving, true self
imprints within you, teaching your personality and
emanating into your
life.
In either case, the
most important thing
is
to
enjoy the subtle flow of well-being through you while you are channeling or sounding.
(I
recommend
that you not take important action or
major changes in your life based solely on your true
As with everything not
in this book,
feel right for you, is
doing
it
and move into an
if
make
self channeling.)
either of these meditations does
not pleasant, or actually distresses you, stop activity that balances
and nourishes you.
If
you
need to talk about your experience with someone, get that support. Stay with exercises that increase your well-being and let go of ones that don't.
44
COMING HOME
9 MEDITATION
TRUE SELF CHANNELING 1.
and notice your breathing. Every breath
Sit quietly
breath,
how
no matter
Assume
that each breath
deeper into true
where your true
3.
is
deeper into true
automatically breathing you a if
little
you are not sure exactly what or
imagine that your breath has innate
self is,
know. Each breath gently breathes you
intelligence that docs little
life-
body
Even
self.
good
a
deep or shallow, and breathes
sustaining oxygen into your 2.
is
self.
.
Think or say a phrase like,
a
.
"I
open
to true self's love
and guidance,
for the highest good." 4.
Ask
a question or
want guidance issue,
imagine you are handing true
about.
make
simply
If
Assume
such
down. Or
if
to you, speak
it
the most
little
out loud or write
you choose another creative medium
assume that true If
is
self
dancing, painting, or making music
it.
"What
me right now?"
As any information comes
do
as,
that each breath gently continues to breathe you a
deeper into true 6.
an issue you
can't think of a question or specific
a general request
helpful information for 5.
you
self
self's
information
is
—begin
— such
it
as
that activity, and
flowing through you as you
you do not notice any information, do not worry; just
assume that
it is
too subtle for you to notice yet, and that
it is
supporting and guiding you at a subconscious level 7.
When you sit
or
lie
are ready to bring your true self channeling to a close,
down and relax for a few minutes. Then
stretch
and look
around, and slowly transition to the next activity in your day.
MY STORY
45
9 MEDITATION
TRUE SELF SOUNDING 1.
Sit quietly
and notice your breathing. Every breath
no matter
breath,
how
is
good
a
deep or shallow, and breathes
life-
sustaining oxygen into your body 2.
Assume
that each breath
deeper into true
Even
self.
where your true
self is,
3.
deeper into true
Think or say
a
and guidance, 4.
imagine that your breath has innate
phrase
like, "I
open
sound
to the
of true self's love
sounds come
let
and that true
self's
out.
Assume energy
If
no sound
that every
is
sound
in each
When
sounding to a
you are ready to bring your true
or He
offers is
the
automatically in every
sound you make. Look for the gentle pleasure
sit
a
for the highest good."
playing with sounds.
right sound,
5.
you are not sure exactly what or
self
Open your mouth and itself, start
if
little
know. Each breath gently breathes you
intelligence that docs little
automatically breathing you a
is
self
down and relax for a few minutes. Then
sound
stretch
close,
and look
around, and slowly transition to the next activity in your day.
9 NOTE: The purpose meant
to replace your
take in your
and if you
The
of these meditations
life. If
feel
fact that
own
is
experiential only
and
is
not
good judgment about choices and actions you
information you receive empowers and balances you,
the ring of truth in
you received
it
it,
then
does not
it
may be information
mean
need to do anything differently in your information and do nothing with
it,
that life.
it is
It
to consider.
"right" or that
is
you
okay to receive
especially in the learning stage.
Part
II
INNER GUIDANCE Listening to Spirit Within
INNER GUIDANCE
49
9
Higher Guidance or Inner Guidance? You have
my most
just read the story of
and learning from the
life-changing event: opening to
intuitive guidance of true
was depleting me and heading me toward
that
me and
nourished possible
— but
led
me
into rich,
new
deep down,
for which,
I
self. It
transformed a
a health crisis to
territory
life
one that
had never dreamed
I
had had
unconscious
silent,
longings.
For the
first
decade or more,
I
kept thinking and speaking of this
source of guidance as higher guidance. And, in
was Higher Guidance.
in previous editions
At called
Spirit or spiritual
first,
higher guidance
it
guidance.
The word
anything
I
title of this
time that
I
my
a
me
channeling as channeling I
so
I
higher
was drawing
hierarchy of consciousness, greater than
could access within myself. The thought that
receiving information from "just myself" horrified me!
myself as
chapter
update that term.
implied that the consciousness
me on
from was above
the
guidance seemed separate from
and referred to
higher
It is
fact,
I
I
might be
still
identified
my personality, which indeed would have been a limited source
from which to draw. Yet as
I
dividing line I
continued opening to higher guidance over the years, the I
realized that
all
along.
thought existed between
my
Then
I
true self
there
I
and myself faded. At one point
had been on the
"council" of higher guidance
began seeing that the true
coaching and doing true
From
it
self
self of
everyone
I
had been
channeling for was also on that council.
recognized that the true
self of
everyone on our planet was
part of higher guidance. In time,
I
saw
that divine realms and expansive states of being
beyond our earthly awareness informed the guidance seem inadequate past conscious
understanding.
communication among
was
this point,
all
Yet
I
and much of could
is
that
still
the
My words
beyond
my
medium
of
contributing realms, beings, and states of being
Unity, the very state toward which our
evolving.
tell
it
as well.
own
conscious awareness
is
COMING HOME
50
that
we
all
unlimited spiritual guidance through our true
self,
so
Over the following few years
I
saw
had access to I
drifted
this
away from
the term higher guidance and started saying inner guidance and channeling inner guidance, or true self guidance
and
channeling true
saw
I
self.
true self as our
personal doorway to universal source.
As more time passed,
realized that everyone's true self
I
expansive and unlimited that
it
blends into everyone
without any separation or individuation. In that image, true
doorway to universal
source;
This perception grew as
someone from simply opened
my
my
saw
I
I
that
and
we all
I
and creativity.
saw
my true self,
I
It
is
self
shared the same true
made.
was the source
I
saw
it
their
When
body and
I
looked
at
personality.
perceived their true
merged with the true
self.
Deeper
a state of unlimited, creative intelligence
everything
clients.
self.
As
I
our two true selves merged into one.
Continuing deeper, our shared true others,
love,
worked with
personality,
awareness to
looked deeper,
not a
was universal source itself.
it
of unlimited intelligence,
I
self was
self,
saw true self as one shared beingness
I
As
true
else's
so
is
still,
selves of
true self
became
from which everyone and
as our essence, individually
of creation and the creative material
and
collectively.
itself.
True
self
knew everything because it was everything, including us. Another way to imagine
The top
funnel.
is
small
this is
with the metaphor of an inverted
and represents our personality's limited
awareness while the bottom fans out, representing our true expansive awareness.
If
we
start at the
top and slowly move
self's
down
the
center of the funnel, our awareness expands as the funnel does.
When we be,
we
arrive at the
depth where the bottom of the funnel should
notice that the funnel doesn't end,
far that it
it
simply keeps expanding so
blends with the funnels of people around
us.
Our
true selves
blend into one. Still
we
keep dropping deeper, and soon
we
are
below the place
INNER GUIDANCE
where
the runnels blend.
all
We
any individual boundaries or unlimited true
are in spaciousness that
identity.
There
51
no longer has
one open, expansive,
is
one source of boundless intelligence and
self for all of us:
creativity.
As we go deeper
we
still,
see that true self
beingness that creates and sustains of this beingness.
there
is
As the
all
things and
creator and sustainer of
nothing that true
self
does not
beings.
all
all
Source.
is
It
is
the
We are made
things and
beings,
all
know and cannot do.
True self is not just an aspect of who we arc. of our being, and of ALL being.
It is the totality
To some people choose to
this is a description of
call it Source,
that opens your heart
God
or Spirit. Perhaps you
the Universe, the Beloved, Light, or another term
and reminds you that you
the magnificent scheme of
are a cherished part of
Please feel free to adjust
life.
my terms
to
be in
harmony with yours.
10
How Accessible is Inner Guidance? I
have come to believe that
just as
And
we
all
draw on inner guidance
we draw on the life-giving oxygen in air with each breath we take.
just as
of our breaths are taken unconsciously,
most
communication with inner guidance
is
our lungs and the guidance
most
of our
automatic and goes unnoticed.
Yet, in spite of our lack of conscious awareness, the air real to
continuously,
we receive is
still
we breathe is
real to
still
our intuition.
We are never truly alone, and somewhere deep within, we know this. We can easily become more aware of the inner guidance we draw from so
regularly.
choose from, and
opening to true greater realm.
There are countless techniques and approaches to
many
will be offered in this book.
self will lead
Through true
us there. True
self
urdimited experience to enter our
we
self is
Any
experience of
the entrance into the
open to urdimited being and allow
lives.
COMING HOME
52
11
How Do Inner Guidance and Higher Guidance Relate? As I
I've
had
mentioned,
to
view
it
way to begin trusting it
that
my own being
an inner aspect of
was
believed higher guidance
I
that
outside myself because
— until
increasingly noticed
I
was an exact match
of the "outer"
higher guidance. Focusing on the external source awakened the internal
one
— and gave me the
ability to recognize
guidance dissolved the separation allowing
me
to see inner
I
felt
it.
This blossoming of my inner
from external higher guidance,
and outer guidance
one and the same, a
as
continuum of awareness that is omnipresent. Even
after reading
about
my transition, many people will relate better
to ideas of higher guidance or outer guidance.
concept to be better or worse. Yet, whenever
guidance
we
consider external, and
believe in the unlimited spirit of
we do
it
our own being,
do not perceive one
I
we
because
we
turn to a higher
we do not
experience or
are missing something
wonderful and healing within us.
Turning to a higher guidance in touch
we
believe
with the inner guidance of true
is
external can help us get
— as
self
it
did for me. Using
external guidance can help us reconnect with the aspect of ourselves that
matches
it
— and
then help us learn to use our internal source more
consciously. Yet, repeatedly relying
on external guidance
guidance might not be beneficial in the long run.
imbalance in our addiction
lives,
It
to replace
inner
can create an
with the external guidance becoming one more
we use to avoid and mistrust ourselves.
Higher guidance of a pure nature will not give information that takes us further from ourselves. Instead,
with information that leads us to
With
this guidance,
that see everyone love
we
self-love
and everything, including
recognition of perfection. it
will be unconditionally generous
and natural empowerment.
can learn to face the world with "loving eyes"
and compassion. This loving
matter where
it
ourselves,
with unconditional
sight opens us to an
unwavering
We can surrender to life and follow its flow no
takes us, for both inner and outer realities become
trustworthy when
w e can see with love everywhere. r
INNER GUIDANCE
53
12
Guidance and
Its
Form
Now that we have discussed specific terms for guidance, all
To be
aside for the rest of this chapter.
possible
I
receive through spirit,
them
will put
as inclusive of everyone as
will use the general term spiritual guidance, to simply
we
guidance
I
whether
we
perceive
mean
as inner or
it
outer.
People report wide variations in the forms in which they experience their spiritual guidance. Pure spirit has
no form
form and does not identify with it. Yet
human beings we live in a world
of form.
Our personality is
so identified with
some form before we recognize Language
as
it
as real
it
and
of its
own:
that everything
conscious awareness of spiritual guidance through the
we
beyond
must have
are able to talk about
it.
we
receive
filter
of our
based on form, as are most thoughts. Because
is
personality,
it is
interpret the experience through our individual and
collective needs for form.
For example, spiritual
if
one person's personality
guidance that comes in the form of a wizened old man dressed in
white robes with an ancient-sounding name, that will be.
If
another person's unconscious need
another planet, that
To
more able to open to
feels
is
with a strong personality,
is real,
a sense of
others
a feminine spirit
form may simply experience
The list
of these forms
is
may need
humor, and the
data about events on earth. Yet, someone
None
is for
what the experience from
the form in which guidance will seem to appear.
believe that the guidance
creative inspiration.
is
who is less
to relate to a being
ability to give factual
attached to personal
spiritual guidance as radiant energy or as
of possible variations
is limitless.
any better or worse than another; the form
we
we grow in reflect our new
give spiritual guidance doesn't necessarily matter. In fact, as
consciousness, that form will very likely change to perspectives.
To some
people, an attachment to form might seem limiting, but
simply a reality of our
based in form.
We
human
consciousness.
honor our need
The
for spiritual
it is
personality's reality
growth by opening
is
to
COMING HOME
54
spirit,
and
spiritual it
we honor our personality by doing it
through form. Receiving
guidance through form invites the personality to participate so
can be touched and transformed by the expansive experience. The
refined frequency of spiritual guidance helps the personality
expand
range of perceived reality and integrate greater awareness into daily It is,
personality's needs as
we
and compassionate that
then, both wise
come
to
of us in any
way we
allow
as
are not "evolved"
we
arc
push aside our
enough to be worthy.
and graciously works
in
and generous, willing will never force its
It
it.
through our personality's hmitation, nor will
we
life.
we open spiritually.
Spiritual guidance is unconditionally loving all
don't
its
it
ever pass us
to
way
up because
Spiritual guidance honors us
harmony with both our
limitations
and
our aspirations. Just keep in mind that the form guidance takes reflects
more about the orientation spiritual source itself.
the guidance, and the
Because personality,
it I
is
it
than about the
What matters more than the form is
the essence of
two should not be confused.
filtered
believe
of the person receiving
through the
information
all
gets unintentionally distorted in
we
beliefs
and Umitations
of our
receive from spiritual guidance
some way. Although an individual may
truly be tapping a pure spiritual source, the process of bringing that
information into form
is
like translating material
from an unlimited
language into a limited one. Something always gets lost in the translation.
The material
is first filtered (at
experiences of the individual. needs,
and experiences
of
least slightly)
Then
by the
it is filtered
each person
who
beliefs, needs,
and
again by the beliefs, hears
or
reads
the
information.
Many people are spiritually clear and open, yet even the most aware human beings are still in bodies. Everyone functioning in a physical body has a personality, and even the most enlightened personality carries some filters.
As we continue
to evolve, honing our abilities to bring unlimited
awareness through our personality,
less distortion will appear.
For the
time being, simply be aware that no information credited to spiritual
guidance conveys exactly and completely the truth that
is
intended.
INNER GUIDANCE
How,
then, can you
know
if
55
information you read or hear from
someone will benefit you? By fine tuning your own intuition and hstening to
it.
Intuition
is
the voice of your true
recognize truth and
let
self.
Your true
self will
you know whether information
is
always
relevant for
you.
Someone
expression of spiritual guidance
else's
replace or invalidate your inner truth;
you
feel
it is
an inner reverberation of Oh, yes,
meant
to
is
not meant to
remind you of
that rings true in me! as
it.
If
you hear or
read information from someone's spiritual guidance, follow that ring of truth
in yourself.
No
matter
Let
it
take you to your inner source of truth and guidance.
how much you
trust or respect people (including me), do
not believe anything just because they say guidance, especially
when
it
it.
comes through other people,
the source of greater knowing within you and
You are your greatest guide.
The purpose is
of spiritual
to activate
make you more aware
of
it.
Part
III
9
SELF-LOVE Your Source of Life
13
The Love That You Are Vibrant love
your
in the bones, tissues,
is
the
essence,
No
awareness.
energy
seed
matter
how
and physiology your
for
of your body.
emotions,
common denominator
and
thoughts,
complex, even' element of your internal and
external realities originates entirely from love. This love
the
It is
and
in all things
beings.
all
the
is
life force,
Through
force you are one with everything and everyone in the
this life
world
— and
beyond.
you
Self-love is the experience of the love that brilliant light. Like the
your being, even feeling
sun or
when
it is
a star,
are.
This love
is
a
shines continuously in the core of
it
not seen or
When
felt.
you have bouts of
unworthy, unlovable, resentful, or judgmental, the cloud cover of
your personality has moved in and has blocked your experience of the
But no matter what may prevent you from seeing or feeling the love
light.
that you are, the love
is still
there
— always. As you learn
self-love,
you are
simply learning to see through that cloud cover to the ever-shining light of your true
self.
When you think about loving yourself, you may still be focused in the cloud cover. In trying to
good about
yourself,
T
you may think,
love
am generous, sensitive, and have a loving heart. I care and I am intelligent, and I really do look pretty good, and...."
myself because
about people,
feel
I
Cherishing those
traits in
your personality
valuable, but that
is
is
not
truly self-love. Learning to appreciate certain patterns within the cloud
cover
is
not quite the same as breaking through
What is beneath the cloud cover does it is
love
essence.
itself.
Living with self-love
You can allow the warmth
with you
in your daily life— when
when you
are in pain or
under
how
you
unconditional, meaning that
it is
loved— because
of that light to shine through
you are
stress.
feel or
not need to be
accepting the love that
is
angry, or resentful does not matter.
dependent on
it.
alone,
when you
Whether you The
behave
is
your
and be
are quiet, even
feel joyous, loving,
love that you are
is
not
at the personality level. It is
there and available regardless of any
COMING HOME
60
conditions, including distressing emotions. Its light penetrates of your being,
and you have
it
no matter how you
You never have to
"get over"
your other feelings
If
you are dealing with
through
you are
it,
you can
still
lost in anger;
from behind
it
all
aspects
feel.
any of
to find love
a painful feeling
and cannot seem to move
draw on the healing power
of self-love. Perhaps
you have a shield of defensiveness around you, and
you are shaking your
fists in
pain and rage. Even in the
midst of that intensity, you can allow some of the warmth and the love that you are to seep through, to
fill
vitality of
you alongside the frustration
and hurt.
You do not have
up your
to give
Allow the love that you
feelings.
with your
Then you
feelings.
anger, sadness, despair, or other
are to shine through
are
empowering
and touch you along
yourself:
You
are allowing
your personality to be the vehicle for the unconditional love you are made of.
14
Loving Yourself and Sweet Me
One
variation of self-love
is
self-compassion.
It is
your natural
birthright. Self-compassion is a gentle state because
and
it is
a warrior's state because
To experience
it is
self-compassion, take a
with each of your next three breaths, Sweet Me.
Then do
it
it is
subtle and quiet,
powerful for making
moment
your
state,
life
changes.
to close your eyes,
silently say the following
and
words:
again, this time looking gently for the tiniest,
most
microscopic sensations of sweetness emanating through you. Continue
doing
it
for a
When
few more breaths.
saying Sweet Me, you are not trying to believe or feel that you
are a sweet person
— nothing could be more
irrelevant, for that
would
occur in the personality's conditional beliefs or emotions. Rather, you are
opening your awareness to the constant, unconditional sweetness that
SELF-LOVE
emanates through you always— but which you usually do not
That sweetness
is
always there because
it is
the lore you are
61
notice.
made of.
Self-compassion does not have loud bells and whistles or strong sensations.
It is
tiny
and
subtle. Microscopic.
you might ever
tool for transformation
work even whenyou do not fed
it
if
And
it is
find. It is so
the most powerful
powerful that
you just keep opening to
it
can
it
anyway.
Self-compassion occurs whenever you open to the sweetness within you.
When
you are worried, close your eyes and
fall
into you like leaves drifting to the ground.
Me
settle alongside the sadness.
When
you
emotion
unbalances
us
— not
unbalancing in the emotion
because
words
Sweet
Me
When you are sad, let Sweet
are hurt, frightened or angry,
Me emanate through you while you
let Sweet
the
let
feel that
there
emotion. Intense
anything
is
innately
but because the emotion occurs in an
itself
environment void of self-compassion. Open to the
tiniest
sweetness for
yourself as that emotion occurs, and you will notice a shift toward balance.
You
Our
will begin to feel safer, calmer, and
spirit is
made
of love
more
alive.
and compassion. Sweetness.
open to self-compassion by saying Sweet Me, we open true
self.
within
Self-compassion
us.
it
it.
we dont
unconditional;
is
or create
Our only job
Without self-compassion we ourselves in our efforts to
to Spirit, Source,
the compassion of our spirit emanating
is
That compassion
anything to deserve
When we
is
to let ourselves have
struggle, finding fault
become something
have to do
better.
That
it.
and rejecting self-rejection
hurts us and keeps us from thriving, intensifying our feeling of being separate from the goodness
we
seek.
As we open
to self-compassion,
automatically feel more acceptance of ourselves as
choose to make changes in our personality or lives,
but
how we do it makes With
in the
we
we create changes
that keep us chasingwcll being.
With self-compassion we create changes that increase our well-being.
We
can
still
circumstances of our
a difference.
self-rejection
are.
we
62
COMING HOME
9 MEDITATION Giving Yourself Sweet Me
Sit
1.
comfortably where you will not be disturbed for 10 to 30
minutes. Close your eyes, and notice your breath.
change or control your breath; just notice Like dropping
2.
two pebbles
into a
feel
pond and watching them fall to
Do
Me
into yourself.
You do not
sweet about yourself or think you are deserving; just drop the
words and let them fall into you 3.
to
it.
the bottom, silently drop the words Sweet
need to
You do not need
not try to
in their
own way.
make anything happen
in response to the
words
Sweet Me. Let your awareness rest gently within you.
Notice any thoughts or feelings that present themselves, and
4.
gently drop the Sweet
Me
words
Sweet
Me into
yourself again.
to change your thoughts or feelings;
You
are not intending
you are simply giving
all
your thoughts and feelings Sweet Me as the environment in which they get to exist. 5.
Continue gently giving Sweet Me to every thought or
feeling until
you are ready to close your meditation. 6.
Take
a deep, invigorating breath or two, stretch
your eyes, and slowly return to your
your body, open
activities.
ATTUNEMENT Giving Yourself Sweet Me Quickly
After you
do
become
familiar
a shorter version
when
with the Sweet
Me
Meditation above, you can
needed, with your eyes closed or open
in the middle of a conversation!
If
you
feel distress,
notice
it
— even
and then
SELF-LOVE
silently
drop the words Sweet Me into
yourself. Don't
distress changes or not; you're simply adding Sweet in
which the
distress exists.
Do
this for
63
worry whether the
Me to
the environment
one to three breaths, longer
if
you
wish.
You might
notice a subtle increase in well-being the
attunement
this
—
or, if
you might
subtlety,
your awareness
not.
Either
is
is
first
time you do
not yet sensitive to that level of
fine.
Continue to practice
this
attunement in different situations, with no pressure on yourself results.
With
repetition, your awareness will
become more
for
sensitive to
subtlety and you will feel a gentle increase in well-being during the
attunement.
With even more repetition,
into your daily
Our
that gentle well-being will creep
life.
culture tends to define loving yourself as loving your personality's
"positive"
such as caring, compassion,
traits,
strength, success, attractiveness,
and so on
creativity,
— and
yourself in spite of your personality's "negative"
resentment, dishonesty, insecurity, so on.
It is
is
as feeling love for
traits,
such as anger,
fear, loneliness, neediness, failure,
impossible to maintain that kind of self-love because
nature arbitrary, judgmental, and unstable.
which
intelligence,
conditional:
The
It
and
it is
by
occurs in the personality,
personality's thoughts, feelings,
and judgments
change according to changes in conditions.
A deeper definition of self-love is you
are.
That love
is
simply
the act of opening to the loxe that
unwavering and unconditional.
It
remains urdimited
love regardless of changes in outer conditions or in the personality's
thoughts, feelings, or judgments.
This deeper self-love involves no assessments or judgments of your
(which
personality's traits
and judgments be aware that
of itself).
it is
of self-love, saying
love
I
am made of.
really are only
You simply open
your personality's assessments to the love
radiating through you in that "I I
love myself"
let it
is a
moment. With that kind
variation of
nurture and guide me."
you are made of and
"I
open to the unlimited
COMING HOME
64
To
the degreeyou open to the love that you are,
you open fully
to life
experiences you have
There your
life
come into
the
world to embrace.
no need to assess whether things
is
for
around you and the
you to deserve to love
yourself.
The two
how
deserve to love yourself always, regardless of
doing in
life,
how
are going well
enough
are not related.
in
You
well you seem to be
successful you feel you are or are not, or
how
others
about you.
feel
The essence
of
who you
are is
you assess your life. Your essence vitality of life itself.
that this essence regardless of
is
unchanged by what you do and how unhmited, unconditional love and the
The challenge comes
is
in being able to
indeed what you are made
whether you or other people
regular basis. Yet this essence
is
of,
know and trust
in every
moment,
are able to perceive
it
always there within you, and
important to teach your personality to open to
on a it
is
it.
When
you have the
feeling in a relationship that the other person does not love
you enough or
Use your experiences
love
as mirrors for learning.
you in the way you want to be loved, stop
how you
Do you
love yourself.
for a
moment and
love yourself completely,
look at
without
judgment and without limitation? Are you able to love yourself unconditionally, regardless of
whether you
are everything
to the love that
how
others see you and regardless of
you want to be?
If
not, that's a signal to
open
you are in your essence.
As you experience the pain of not feeling loved by another, know loss
that you are also feeling the
and heartache of not fully lovingy ourself.
In early childhood,
most people
are taught
by family members and
society to stop loving themselves fully, to lose awareness of the love that
they
are. Infants
and small children automatically
They love themselves and human, animal, and
all
beings they
live
from their essence.
come into contact with: those in
spirit forms. Children's receptors are
wide open.
SELF-LOVE
They
receive
beings and love them
all
all
unconditionally; that
65
their
is
natural state.
Yet by the age of two or
so,
many
children have already learned to
stop loving themselves completely and, therefore, have learned to stop
The two go hand
loving others completely. loving oneself
is
way
initial loss of
indeed the greatest pain one can experience.
of the joy of being openly
one
That
in hand.
or another,
and whole-heartedly present
It is
the loss
in the world. In
pain in relationships can be traced to that loss of
all
love for oneself, loss of that open-heartedness and the ability to share
it
with the world.
Each day several times
as
and
you are doing,
"Am I
think, I
you go about your briefly
"Am
ask,
check in with I
loving myself as
a meal, having
I
work?"
yourself. In the
loving myself while
loving myself as
I
drive?"
When you
you may want to stop
activities,
I
When you
this?"
As you
drive,
work, think,
are at
love, ask,
"Am
over and over, the love that you
are.
how It
automatically you
also allows
you to
consciously use each activity as an opportunity to open to greater In one breath you can silently say to yourself,
unconditional love that
You
I
moment?"
This inquiry allows you to begin noticing
love.
"Am
are speaking with someone, eating
an argument, taking a bath, or making
loving myself in this
forget,
do
midst of whatever
I
even
engaged in activity that
open to the
am."
will feel increasing well-being as you learn to
self-love continuously,
"I
self-
is
open to
this
kind of
when— or perhaps especially when —you
are
unpleasant or mundane to you. Being able to
love yourself in this continuous
way
will assist
you in opening to greater
realms of awareness, both within yourself and in the world around you.
15
Letting Love Light Your Life
When your personality is out of touch with self-love, it's as though there is
a
w ar T
going on within you, a discord between yourself and the world,
or a pattern of conflict that keeps surfacing
between you and
others.
Or
COMING HOME
66
you may But
fill.
perpetual emptiness, an inner gap that you can't seem to
feel a
when your
radiates through you
To
envision this,
personality opens to self-love, the
power
of love
and transforms the quality of your life. take an imaginary journey.
let's
9 MEDITATION Letting Love Light Your Life
To
begin, gently allow your awareness to
move
into your heart center,
wherever that seems to be in your chest. Imagine that no matter what tension or restriction you feel in your body, your heart center
and coming to
life.
Imagine that
it is
opening
gently radiating a beautiful vibration
you have never before experienced.
of love that
This vibration of love might be subtle, but essence of
is
life
that
it
it
carries so
has a quiet power and nothing diminishes
matter what else you experience, this deep vibration of love
With each
much
is
of the it.
No
constant.
breath you take, this love becomes brighter and more alive
within you. Give yourself a few moments to receive this
gift of love as it
streams throughout your body.
As you continue it
would be
like
if
to notice this vibration of love, gently imagine
were
this love
to radiate
outward to your auric
what field,
the energy sphere surrounding your body. Your body and the space
around your body would be bathed in
Remember
that this love,
anything you can think, you.
It is
as
continues to
feel,
powerful as fill
life
this love.
however
subtle, is not diminished
say or do. Nothing can take this love from force itself
your body and auric
—because
field
life
with
this
it is life
force
— and
it
no matter what other thoughts
you think or challenges you meet. Imagine what through your
by
it
would
feel like to
go
continuous love streaming through you and
around you.
Now heart,
imagine what
it
would be
your body, and your auric
like
field
if
this love not only filled
your
but radiated outward into your
SELF-LOVE
world
—
67
your house, your workplace, your town, spreading across
filling
the planet. Everything in your world would be bathed with this love.
You can encounter
imagine, then, that everywhere you went, you
love. All
people and
all
places
would be bathed with
would
this love.
Every time you had a conversation with someone, you would see and this love.
And nothing anyone could think, feel,
do would diminish
say, or
powerful vibration.
this
This means that every situation you encountered, no matter or worrisome or painful, if
feel
would always
carry the energy of love with
something should happen to upset you, you would also
love
would be
difference
it
It
So
the
when you
with the happiness. Imagine what
would mean
that nothing in your
you that did not come with
to
carry with center.
would make!
it
come
ever
feel love
sad
it.
feel love;
there alongside the upset feeling. And, of course,
were happy you would
how
love. Ever}
7
life
a
would
experience would
the vibration of the very love that emanates from your heart
What a powerful thought!
And it is a powerful reality. It is already taking place in your life this very moment and will continue to take place every day. It is already real. You simply have not noticed
moments aware of
to focus it.
permeating
on the
Similarly,
all
most
of the time. Before
feeling of love in
of physical reality. filled
The
with
is
of the love that is
love has been there
it.
When you
great joy. This experience need not be rare; the
constant experience of this love
you took these
your heart, you were not so
you have not been aware
and your world have been is a
it
all
do notice
way
simply to open to
along.
this love,
to create a it,
You it
more
moment by
moment. Allow yourself to want are,
and remember that
level
and can
affect the
to experience the radiance of love that you
desire often. That desire takes place at a deep
day-by-day creation of your
life if
you choose to
guide you. The power of such a true desire can assist you in opening your heart and remembering the love that is your source of life. let it
COMING HOME
68
16
Choosing Love Your mighty
ally in
will gladly serve
As you get up for a
you
in the
moment and
today,
I
opening to greater
you
as
start
morning and your
say,
feet
touch the
expanding your
all
floor,
it
ally
direction.
you can pause
"To the depth of my being, more than anything
choose to experience the love that
clear intention,
your intention. This
each day, but you must give
remember that phrase from time
Of
self-love is
else
am." Also choose to
I
to time throughout the day.
With such
experiences of that day will be aligned toward
self-love.
course, calling
on your
ally
does not necessarily
pleasant things will happen to you that day.
It
mean
that only
simply means that
—whether you or not, whether comfortable or uncomfortable — will serve the purpose of bringing you
whatever does happen
like
into greater self-love. Naturally
you will have some experiences
that feel painful or uncomfortable. But
purpose of embodying greater
love,
when you have
even those
is
it
it
difficult
in
life
aligned with the
times will, in the
end, bring you that love.
You hold but
I
am
yourself back
when you
not willing to go through
want pleasant
say, "I
difficult
want more
experiences to get
experiences." That limits you. Love
and to embody complete love of
self
love in
is
my
it. I
life,
only
present everywhere,
you will face a
full
range of
life's
experiences.
Being willing to open to total love means beingwilling to open to
all
of life.
Sometimes growth into love takes place under the
surface,
and you
do not see evidence of it right away. You may not consciously know when an experience, either pleasant or unpleasant, has just opened you to greater love.
It
may
take time as the love works
personality's awareness
its
where you can consciously feel it.
way
into your
New patterns
SELF-LOVE
begin long before you can
feel or see
69
them; you do not have control over
the process of love's emergence.
Have
faith.
trust that the
As you repeat your intention
to
open to
you can
self-love,
work will be done. Your learning will be guided by the very
source of love deep within your being that you are calling into your
life.
You cannot have
and
more trustworthy
a
experience will automatically be love.
In doubtful
moments,
greater self-love,
and
I
may
it
yourself of your commitment:
fertile
"I
Every
guide.
ground
for the
situation
growth
of this
strengthen your trust to remind
want
greater love in
my
life. I
open to
willingly receive the experiences that can bring
it
to me."
17
Loving Others
Loving yourself increases your love of others. You may have been taught to skip loving yourself
and go
straight to loving others, as
"right" or "good" to love others
more than
impossible to be successful at this
effort.
learned or experienced unless there
is
Self-love is the basic pool
When
yourself.
though
Ironically,
it is it
is
Love of others cannot truly be
already love of
you draw from
self.
for all other
forms of
you allow yourself to be bathed with the love that you
love.
are, that
love automatically emanates into the world.
Self-love
is
the source thatgivesyou
the ability to love other people.
Your capacity grows.
When
ability to
for love of others naturally
you know and love
know and love
all
self
you spontaneously gain the
beings around you. So, any difficulty you have
seeing others in their essence seeing your
yourself,
deepens as your love of
is
a reflection of the difficulty
you have
own essence.
When you want to love others more, when you wish your heart could be bigger and your judgments
less
quick or
less harsh,
remember that
COMING HOME
70
what you
want is
You need
being. first
really
to
to be
more
touch with the essence of your
in
open your heart more to
own
Nourish yourself
yourself.
with your love, and that love will grow outward.
When you insist on seeing or loving others more fully than yourself, it is
tremendous
a
strain. It
means that your outer
lived in a
way you
what you
are not giving to yourself.
are not living inside: If
You must keep
you are not loving
giving to others yourself,
tremendous energy to love others, and you must be vigilant that love
is
based on
effort rather
stop trying to love for a
moment
must be
relationships
at
it.
it
takes
Because
than on natural emanation, you cannot or the loving will stop. Sometimes that
loving will collapse despite your best efforts, leaving you exhausted until
you recover enough to rev up the loving Yet is
when you
truly love yourself, love for others follows in a
Then your
continuous, natural, and effortless.
love
is
again.
life is
blessed,
way that and your
the blessing you share with the world.
18
Recognizing True Love
Relationships with other people can be complex. others' intentions. "Is this person honest
close
with
this person?"
interests at heart?" feel at risk for
When others.
It
You
with me?"
me
Is it safe for
"Does this person really love
How can you judge these things
often have to assess
me
or have
accurately?
to be
my best
You may
being fooled, disappointed, or hurt.
self-love is real to you,
becomes
clearer
you are
when others
deceived by
less frequently
are (and are not) operating from a
place of love and honor. Carrying the energy pattern of love within you
enables you to recognize a matching pattern in others. It's
when you
are unfamiliar
be protective. Without
with
self-love
self-love that
you genuinely need to
you do not carry the energy pattern of
true love within your conscious experience, so you don't have a reliable
standard by which to assess other people. In such situations, realize the limitation you are
working with; then turn your focus from others
yourself and open to self-love. Say,
"I
open to deep
self-love
I
know
I
to
can
SELF-LOVE
trust.
open to the love that
I
self-love will
I
am."
Empower
71
yourself. In the long run,
bring you the love you want from others as well as the
ability to recognize
it.
19
Love and Physical Reality Some people pass through
a
phase in their spiritual growth of holding a
negative view of the physical realm, as though
it's
a spiritually
backward
place to be. They, often unconsciously, consider themselves and others spiritually inadequate for being in physical bodies in the physical world.
who would live in the physical world are the spiritually underdeveloped ones who cannot "make it" in the higher realms, those who have not evolved enough to leave the They may
believe that the only beings
physical realm once and for
all
complain that spiritual growth reality itself is
realm
live as
pure
spirit.
They may
also
slow in physical form and that physical
dense and Hmited. In short, they
the physical
feel that
an inferior place to be.
is
This condition
is
a spiritual version of
personality's self -rejection
perspective, however, all
is
and
realms are
no
is
low
self-esteem in
projected into spiritual
reality is better or
is
true
self's
worse than another because
made of and infused with the same pure
Physical reality
beliefs. In
which the
spirit
and life force.
a magnificent reality
in spite of how limited it feels.
Beings of pure light and love choose to incarnate into the physical realm
because
come
it
holds such rich experience and challenge.
When
such beings
into physical form, they open to experiences in the physical realm
for the
purpose of divine growth. That growth
is
about learning to find
love even in the seeming density and limitation that characterize physical reality
and the prevailing consciousness
It is
here.
out of love for yourself that you have chosen to come into
physical form.
And it
is
out of that same love of
self that
you continue to
COMING HOME
72
be here: researching, experiencing, creating, experimenting, and growing.
when you leave the physical that you move on when you are ready. Likewise,
realm,
Whenever you move from one form
it
will be out of love of self
motivation for the leap always comes from love of fuel,
the
power that moves you from one realm to
you are here in physical
reality at all is
enough to make the journey. The
trick
another, the
of reality to self.
Love of
self is
the
another. So the fact that
proof that you loved yourself
now is
to continue loving yourself
while you are here.
The only true injury
in life
occurs by
going through an experience
and not being able
Part of the journey you are
to find the love in
it.
making through physical
reality involves
learning to find love in the midst of every situation, every feeling, and
every belief you encounter. For example, grief or loss
is
an intense, often
unbearable emotion. Yet as you allow yourself to surrender deeply to that feeling, at the core of it
you will come upon a ray of light that
that will be the healer.
You
grief, like
everything,
is
will find that love at the core of grief because
made of love.
Finding that love will not take away the pain.
away the
feeling of grief or loss, but
feeling grief or loss can
Love and substance of love
life.
it
may not even
will transform
it.
At that
and the same. Vibrationally, love
No wonder
it is
You may fear criticism because you
is
life
and the being that you
fear not loving yourself.
anger because you fear not being able to love others.
love
and
your
point,
the very
may fear your is fragile
take
so frightening to be out of touch with
— that means being out of touch with
truly are.
It
no longer deny you the experience of love.
are one
life
and
is love,
elusive, fear arises in
ability to experience the love that
many
you
You
When
forms. But as you increase
are,
and the love that
core of every emotion, you will find less and less in
life
to fear.
is at
the
SELF-LOVE
73
ATTUNEMENT Self-Love #1
Three times a day, stop for one to
you
are. If
you are
sitting, sit
five
minutes to remember the love that
with awareness that you
are opening your
heart to pure love radiating through you. Imagine that love filling you and radiating outward.
While you
are walking, be
aware of that inner
radiance of love with each step. While you are talking with someone,
remember that inner radiance
of love at different times while
speaking and listening. In every circumstance, as this love radiates into your daily
you are
fills
you
it
life.
ATTUNEMENT Self-Love
When
you are in bed
at night
#2
waiting for sleep, imagine that love
emanates from your heart center through your body. just use
them long enough to get in touch with the
of the love that
you
open to the love that
are. I
You might
you use words,
subtle feeling or image
gently speak or think a phrase like
am" or 'The true love and light
of
"I
my being radiates however
slight
may seem. Notice that feeling, letting it grow as it moves you into
sleep.
through me." Allow yourself to receive that love and it
If
light,
COMING HOME
74
VIVIAN Vivian had trouble picturing a future with her in
it.
She thought
it
was
because she had cancer and, even with the treatment she was undergoing,
had been given
a
poor prognosis. But her problem was bigger than just
her uncertain future: Vivian wasn't in her present.
She was physically there, sitting on the couch across from
The
office.
wrapped
scarf
me
my
in
securely to cover her chemotherapy-induced
baldness attested to her vulnerability and struggle. Yet she had lived so
much
of her
herself.
life
for other people's approval that she didn't
me was
Saddest to
unless she
made
know
or trust
that she didn't feel she deserved goodness
other people happy. Her
own
Receiving goodness without sacrificing for
it
happiness eluded her.
— and
feeling joy,
compassion, or quiet well-being just because she existed
self-
—were foreign
ideas to her. I
how
asked Vivian
me
she nurtured herself, and she looked at
blankly. "I'm a perfectionist.
I...I
thing,"
was
suggested, and, to
my
we were on ground she recognized. Boy, do I know about that. I've
felt
just always try to
do the right
the only answer she could find.
"Being perfect surprise, her eyes
is
lit
a recipe for depletion,"
up. Suddenly
"Depletion! Yes, depletion.
depleted as long as familiar, as
I
can remember." She sighed, relaxing into the
though we were talking about one of her friends.
Later in the session for
I
you to want
as
I
asked, "Vivian,
much goodness
if,
by magic,
it
was
for yourself as possible,
totally
okay
what would
you want the most?" She thought a moment, and then words charged out as though they
had been trapped underground and had
just found a passage to
"Freedom. Autonomy. Not looking to others for approval.
Speaking from
my heart
motivated by joy and
want to
and
life. I
My own voice.
soul.
Not being driven by perfection
want
to trust higher good.
I
air.
want
—being
to
live. I
thrive!"
"Wonderful. at every level
And
if
you had
all
that plus total health and well-being
—body, heart, and soul —what would you
call it?"
I
asked.
SELF-LOVE
"Hmmm..," she answered
slowly, her eyes unfocused
directed somewhere behind me. "Radiant health.
75
and dreamy,
Yes, radiant health."
We sat quietly, letting her words settle in the room. As face.
Vivian's eyes shifted
With
back into focus on me, fatigue took over her
a little shrug suggesting futility she
us both, another sigh escaped. Unaware of
might sound, she concluded, "But responsible to give talks about
if I
how
I
assumed was obvious to
how
illogical
comment
her
get radiant health, then
did
it.
You know,
be
I'll
to help
and
inspire other people." Sadly, Vivian did not recognize that recovering from a
disease
— and on top of
even before her
that, gaining radiant health she
illness
accomplishment in
— might
itself,
be
a
threatening
life
had never enjoyed,
profound and well deserved
something purely to
rejoice
about and to
let
other people help her celebrate. In contrast, her conclusion reflected the belief she
my
Her own
office with:
received.
Improvements
improve the
lives
had walked
existence wasn't valuable. She had to give
to her life
and well-being had
to be offset with
and well-being of others. Feeling depleted was a
into
more than
she
more sacrifice
sign she
was on
to
the
right track, living as she should.
Sometimes,
like
Vivian,
we
don't
personality's beliefs of "not deserving" are or
prevent us from receiving the goodness
we
are
how ingrained how automatically
realize
our they
we want. Opening to the love that
and practicing self-compassion nurtures and supports
softening the grip of those beliefs and teaching us
goodness from ourselves, other people, and
Life.
how
us, gently
to receive
COMING HOME
76
CHLOE In
2002
my
bounced into
a tiny, four-legged teacher
Chloe was a
life.
two-month-old Yellow Labrador and Golden Retriever mix
me what
looked
real self-love
She was
like.
my
first
who showed
puppy, and
enthusiastic about teaching her the basics. House-breaking and Sit as well as
first,
Down,
Stay,
and Back (out
of the
was
I
came
cupboard or fridge
— an
commands were fun
early necessity!). She learned fast, thinking all the
games.
Our hours together on the
hill in
the backyard taught
"Take time to stop and eat the flowers." "Walk
values, too.
And "The
carry a big stick.. .or any stick you find."
grass
of her
softly
and
a salad
is really
With that groundwork laid, my biggest lesson was about to come.
bar."
One wall
in
my bedroom
dozen or more times pass
me some
held a
a day, every time
was an opportunity for quick
Animal Planet
who
full
flung out
its
I
length mirror.
entered or
self scrutiny.
walked by
I
left
it
a
the room. Each
Like a frog
I
once saw on
tongue and snatched a bug so
fast
I
my mind flung out tiny lashes of judgment with such speed I couldn't see how they diminished my self esteem. "I look fat." "Bad hair day." "New wrinkles." couldn't see
it
happen until it had been replayed in slow motion,
"Would a face lift Then one day
really
as
the mirror for the
her
little I
be so
politically incorrect?"
Chloe and
first time.
I
left
the bedroom, she noticed herself in
Her reaction was
face a quick lick, right
simple: She paused, gave
on the mirror, and walked
was stunned. With one quick
lick of her
on.
puppy tongue, Chloe had
caused the frog tongue of my mind to be replayed in slow motion. For the time,
first
to help
I
me
saw what look or
it
had been doing.
feel better,
It
had
not
been using
my
mirror
but to reinforce a self-image of "not good
enough." Chloe's herself
puppy mind, on the other hand, had no
self-rejection.
She met
with the same open-hearted love and acceptance she offered to
everyone, unconditionally. For weeks, until her interest
moved on
to
other things, she continued to respond to herself as the love that she
was
—the same love that we
all
are
—with a quick
lick
on the
mirror.
Part IV
JOURNEY INTO FORM The Exploration of Limitation
20
The Journey So Far Your journey into
restricted
by time or limited
which
a unity in
knew
began
in a state of pure spirit
and unlimited
Before coming into physical form, your experience
being.
and
this life
to sequential events.
literally all things
individuality, there
was no
were
You
was not
lived in a fluidity
possible.
Although you
separation between one being and
another or between one thing and another. Everything and everyone was
recognized as expressions of your expansive being.
As unlimited you thought
The very
spirit,
you were
a master of creation.
a thought, the appropriate
instant you
felt a desire,
The very
form to express
that desire (or perhaps
it
instant
manifested.
its fulfillment)
manifested. All your inner experience and refined emotional naturally
manifested for you.
You
lived in a highly creative state.
feeling just a feeling. Every experience
No thought was just was an impulse
Because you were not in a physical body or in physical
were more
And
subtle,
more
fluid
a thought,
no
of creative force. reality, all
forms
than anything physical. Yet they were
real.
because your awareness was not limited by form, you were
conscious at
all levels.
You never
witnessed flowed from your
Can instant
it
be that
all
manifestations,
forgot that the manifestations you
own creative source.
these characteristics— unity, fluidity of time,
malleable form,
all
experienced
as
creative
impulse, unlimited possibilities, multilevel awareness— are also true
about physical
reality?
All the characteristics listed above (and
many more)
are true of the
unlimited realm without any limits applied to them whatsoever. Your experience in that realm took place at a highly refined distant
memory
of
it is
level,
and the deep,
guiding you in this lifetime. For example, you
may
be frustrated in this lifetime that the things you want to manifest in your life
take so long. This slowness in physical reality contrasts with a faint
memory of the tremendous speed of manifesting in the unlimited realm.
80
COMING HOME
In physical reality, you tend to he hypnotized by solid matter.
The way your personality perceives physical solid,
most unbudgeable, seems most
real.
You
reality,
what seems more
and
define
within the constraints you observe and choose to believe
direct your
in.
life
For example,
the things you do and consciously experience stay within the limits of
what you think
possible
is
— which means you don't do or consciously
experience anything you think
impossible. Therefore, impossibility
is
actually the factor that shapes your reality it.
Your belief in impossibility
tells
is
by putting boundaries around
you what the
limits to physical life are
and where you can expect to find them. And you abide by them.
Your personality physical reality.
It
and
impossibility
is
the aspect of your being that has adapted to
forms and carries your beliefs in limitation and
sees to
that you live according to their restrictions.
it
You can be happy, but only
to a point.
You can be magical and
creative,
but only to a point. You can have what you want and need, but only to a point.
You can break through any
basic job
is
barrier in
to control your unlimitedness
life, but....
and act
Your as
personality's
your navigator
through the Hrnited realm of physical form.
Living in physical reality
is
a much denser experience
than living in unlimited spirit
—
until you realize that
even in physical form, unlimited spirit
Unlimited
spirit is the
you have access to unlimitedness
is
it
essence of your being, your true nature, and
whenever you choose to open to
it.
You may
ask, "If
why do I feel limited? Why does much more real than my spirit does? Why can't I
so
live in conscious,
Coming
with you.
so close at hand, then
my personality seem seem to
is
unlimited awareness on a daily basis?"
into this lifetime
from the realm of
was
spirit to the
move from the unlimitedness
a process of adjusting
your awareness
realm of physical form. Whenever you
of spirit into a
new
realm, part of the
adjustment involves acclimating to the prevailing consciousness of the
JOURNEY INTO FORM
new
realm.
lifetime,
As you moved
8
into physical reality at the beginning of this
you took on the cultural consciousness that was predominant
when you came
Because you came into physical form at a time
in.
the prevailing consciousness here
was one
you took on separation and hmitation
You did
this in
two ways:
first
as
of separation
your
when
and Hmitation,
new reality to
explore.
by simply slipping into
a physical
body and then by being receptive to personal and cultural conditioning.
How can moving into a body affect your consciousness? The physical body yet
marvelous instrument.
is a
it is
more than just
vibrations precisely
It
quite literally allows you to be here,
a physical container.
match the vibrations
The body
made
so that
its
of consciousness prevailing
on
the physical plane. This means that your body's job
is
to hold your being's
is
vibration within a range that exactly reflects the vibrational range of
physical reality and the collective physical consciousness.
The body
also exactly
physical earth. take,
matches the vibration, or energy pattern, of the
You absorb energy from the
earth with every step you
and that energy keeps reminding your body your
for holding
spirit's
hands and
in your
focus here.
feet,
of the proper vibration
You have energy
receptors, especially
making contact with the earth and
for
receiving its energy patterns. This energy nurtures your in vibrational synch
From
body and keeps it
with the earth and with physical reality.
the time you were born, your consciousness has also been
bombarded with mental, emotional, and grew up
in
a
culture
information about what
that
experiential conditioning.
You
has imprinted you continuously with
was and was not considered
took in this information you were pressured to adopt reality so
for
you could fit into your family and
it
real here.
as
As you
your operative
society.
For example, most people had the experience of growing up in families in
which they were not seen and honored for
all
of who they truly
were. As infants they were not perceived as expansive beings whose
unhmited
spirits
extended
far
beyond
their
small bodies.
In early
childhood they were not recognized as being completely aware and sensitive to the thoughts, feelings,
and energies moving from person to
82
COMING HOME
person around them. In midchildhood their true
was not seen
self
or
celebrated by the people closest to them. Instead,
most children were viewed through
consciousness from which the family
was
a projection of the
already operating.
Members
of
the family were no longer consciously living from true self and a state of unity. Their experience of true self
and replaced by
and unlimited
a consciousness in the personality
and separation. Having forgotten
had been dulled
spirit
based on limitation
saw
their unity, these individuals
themselves as completely separate from others rather than deeply
connected to them. Having forgotten that they experienced
life
all
things are truly possible,
as a struggle against difficult odds.
So the family related from their personality and projected their
and
personality's reality onto the children, seeing
personalities
who were
relating to
them
as
separate and limited. In response, the
also
They came
children learned to view themselves that way, too.
to
experience themselves as alone, no longer one with others in a deeply spiritual
being.
way and no
longer consciously one with their
They lost touch with
It is
their true
own
urdimited
self.
painful for children to realize (often even in infancy) that they
are not recognized for
who
they truly are and that, to maintain the
connection and intimacy they need from the people around them, they
must
forget their inner truth. Their inner senses tell them,
we must real to my
here to connect with people. For that to happen,
common
reality.
schoolmates,
My
unlimited nature
my teachers,
is
not
and the other people
not appear real to them as
I
truly
am
I
depend
in the fullness of
become whatever they can relate to."
Most children allow themselves molded
to be
to the cultural consciousness
to achieve the
"I
human bonding they need.
have come share
some
my
family,
do
on. Because
I
my
will
spirit,
I
JOURNEY INTO FORM
The
cost to children during this adjustment
that bit
is
year, the rigidity of their personality is reinforced self is
grow
put
older
and have more thoroughly forgotten
bit,
and more of
When
from conscious awareness.
aside, lost
by
year by
their true
these children
their true
self,
they then
play out the other side of that dynamic. They become adults
encourage
unconsciously
the
new
children
put
to
83
aside
who their
unlimitedness. These acculturated adults no longer recognize the essence of unlimited children as real.
Few
parents realize that they do this with their children. Their
experience
is
want
that they love their children and
to connect with
them. They are simply unaware that they already have put themselves aside and are.
They
are
are, therefore,
unaware
missing
much
of the pressure this puts
of
on
who
much
their children
their children and,
through that unconsciousness, they perpetuate the pattern. None of is
done with malice or with conscious
intent, yet
of
it is
this
a chain reaction
that has gone from generation to generation for millennia.
Something unique reaction
is
slowing.
awareness
is
is
happening in the world
The pattern
of passing
at this time.
on an inheritance
The chain
of restricted
transforming into a pattern of passing on expanding
awareness. People are reclaiming their forgotten, yet always unlimited, spiritual essence
from true
self,
by Coming Home
to true
they recognize true
environment in which true
self
As they increasingly
self.
others
in
self
live
and create an
awareness can flourish in everyone's
life.
True self is your link between personality and unlimited awareness.
Your personality has become acclimated accepted in physical reality and accepts
it,
to the limited consciousness
the state of pure spirit that you unwaveringly
merge. Because your true of
your personality,
their union.
it
self is
pure
spirit
embraces both
Unlimited awareness
too.
are. It is
and
realities
is
is
time for the two to
conscious (and loving!)
and holds the space
for
COMING HOME
84
21 Illusion
and Truth
All limitation in physical reality
As long
as
you believe that any limitation
convincing.
It
can look
Limitation
no match
is
you believe in
real, feel real,
it
But as you open to true
as a force that holds
something your personality does on a daily dissolves the
Limitation can be
"fact." real.
as
it
for unlimited being. Limitation is real as long
and interpret
it
and act
you will experience
and gives way.
limitation softens
self,
as
is real,
and will find data to back up that
real
illusion.
is
moment
it is
you back. This
is
However, limitation
basis.
met with unlimitedness. Unhmitedness
frees
limitation.
Noticing your tendency toward limitation can be frustrating. Yet
even
you are frustrated about the limitations in your
if
need to
them. Fighting your limitations
resist or fight
one illusion with a second illusion that you can eliminate the
first
one.
The way
your
life
It is
there
is
is
no
simply engaging
fight,
dominate, or
to regain your true self awareness
experience the unhmitedness of your being attacking your limitations.
is
life,
and to
not to go through your
to allow true self awareness to
come
life
into
alongside those limitations.
Unlimitedness
is
the greater truth Limitation
Greater truth transforms lesser
Unlimitedness
is
is
the lesser truth.
truth.
the truth that brought you into this
truth that maintains your presence in this
go with you as you leave this
life.
life;
and it
is
life; it is
the
the truth that will
Bringing unlimited awareness alongside
an experience of limitation will catalyze transformation. That's why,
when
you're feeling
bad about
yourself,
opening to the love that you are
why opening to love at the core of grief will make the grief tolerable. It's why opening to inner guidance will teach the personality a new way of perceiving the world. will soften the self-judgment.
It's
JOURNEY INTO FORM
85
Because unlimitedness carries greater essential truth than does Umitation, an unlimited experience— such as the unconditional love of true self— has a magnetic-like pull that prompts limitation to restructure.
Prompted by this a pattern that
force, limitation will restructure itself energetically into
more
matches the urdimited experience. Simply
closely
put, Umitation will
accommodate, and ultimately support,
to
shift
urdimitedness as the dominant
As
happens there
this
previously
went
reality.
a
is
merging of energies. The energy that
into maintaining the illusion of limitation, as well as the
energy that went into fighting or resisting that limitation,
support your experience of true
self's
is
then used to
unlimited being.
22 Living a Split
The essence
of spirit
love. All spiritual
feeling is
is
as well.
nature that does not
thought with
There
come through
feel love, for that is
personality's job
AH
unlimited love. All spiritual sight
thought
with love
not always
is
is
is
The
sight
with
love. All spiritual sense or
no experience
love.
is
of a truly spiritual
personality, however, does
not necessarily the personality's job. The
to explore the experience of Umitation.
thoughts, feeUngs, and beUeves that limit you
come from your
personaUty, as do aU perceptions or assumptions that anything
is
impossible. According to your personaUty's perspective, successful Uving
means knowing the
and the world and
limitations of yourself, others,
focusing your creative efforts within those confines. In your personaUty's experience, there are Umits to everything,
including the amount and conditions of love available within yourself, others,
and the world. Because of
your personaUty
is
this apparently
Umited supply of
prone to being separated from love
by the words or actions
of other people. So
it
easily, often
love,
simply
makes judgments, holds
grudges, and harbors resentment. In that state of aUenation from the
urdimited love of true
self, it is
lost in its
own reaUty.
Rest assured that the essence of your being
is
not affected by the
COMING HOME
86
limitations of your personality. Unlimited love, compassion, creativity continue to
your
life,
be your true
state.
From this essence
all
elements of
including your personality, are designed to give your soul the
greatest opportunity for compassionate learning.
learning
wisdom, and
is
your true
Your guide through
this
self.
Why does your guide seem so elusive? Your true self is fully conscious of itself
and of the
your personality
totality of is
your being, including your personality. Yet
not very conscious
personality's reality does not include true
When
your
primary
most
personality's reality
is
conscious awareness
may
self
and
but
spirit,
it
identity
of
self
because your
self.
with
is
true
your
you in your everyday
real to
your
personality, life.
Your
occasionally open to the expansiveness of true
usually snaps back like a rubber
limitation of personality. Because you experience these
separate rather than integrated,
it is
as
band
two
though you are living
to the
realities as
a split.
True self is continuously present. It
communicates withyour personality at all times but speaks in a quiet voice.
Because your personality turned to the physical
world
it is
with denser experiences, so your
you that whatever
tells
most obvious, and has the strongest sensations
that whatever
sensations
is
is
quietest,
least real.
true self to adapt
accustomed to your personality's louder, more
is
obvious voice. Your personality densest,
away from
no longer so consciously attune to the subtlety
of true self frequency. It identifies
conscious awareness
ear
its
most
True
subtle, least noticeable,
self
voice
is like
a faint
is
is
most
loudest,
real
— and
and has the
least
whisper and speaks
through subtlety and refined experience. Usually your personality does not recognize
it.
You may be entering
two seemingly
a
phase in your
life
when your orientation to
separate realities of personality and true self
one of increasing awareness of true
self's
developing the ability to listen to true
is
the
shifting to
presence. In this phase you are
self
and take action based on
its
JOURNEY INTO FORM
guidance. True
87
whispers are heard through your intuition, and
self's
actions you take from this source change your
life.
The personality has become well developed
in the current culture.
This maturity of the personality brings us to the brink of expansion into a
We have gone as far as we can go by identifying so strongly with the personality. We have lived the reality of personality so fully that new identity.
we have completed that In fact, for survival
we
cycle of evolution
must
move on
and
are
now ready to move on.
to greater awareness. Because of its
basis in limitation, the personality has created so
many that
much
distress
and so
survival crises, at the global level as well as in our individual lives,
we must make
the shift to true
self
awareness to realize solutions.
We need to draw from a more expanded and creative perspective to meet our challenges. This its
is
no accident. Whenever
a collective consciousness
"study" of a particular level of awareness,
balance.
This
it
finds itself
motivation for breaking through into the next explored.
The natural
identified
with personality
state of
somewhat
be
level of reality to
imbalance brought on by having so
now
off-
momentum and
natural and guarantees a built-in
is
completes
pushes us forward into
a
new
fully
identity,
and individually.
collectively
This identity comprises a merging of the two identities ricocheting between.
As
this
merging progresses,
we have been
we will feel less and less
forced to choose between Umitation and unlimitedness; they wall no longer be like
oil
and water, but together will become
a
new substance.
In this process neither reality wins over the other, and neither reality loses
any of
its characteristics.
Personality simply opens to true
self,
and
they become integrated.
Many people
still
think that being on a spiritual path means fighting
the personality and that enlightenment means defeating the personality
once and for But in truth, for a
all,
as thought spirit is
spirit
somehow
set free in that 'Victory."
has never been imprisoned by the personality, not even
moment. (Unlimitedness
is
never limited by limitation.) Spirit has
only loved the personality, endlessly bathing it— as
and everything— in the love and light
it
of unlimitedness.
bathes everyone
COMING HOME
88
Ifyou
want
to be enlightened, be just that: in light
Shine the light of love and acceptance into every part ofyour being, as you already are.
Cherish your personality. You do not always have to identify with
by
or be restricted
your creative
its
limited awareness, but honor
an expression of
as
Your personality has done an excellent job
life force.
showing you the
it
and
reality of limitation
is
worthy
it
of your love
of
and
acceptance.
Cherishing your personality might be
You might think
controls you.
personality
by defeating
that
The truth with
it.
That
you
feel that it
only you could get rid of your
if
or walling yourself off from
it
free to soar the spiritual heights personality that
difficult if
you long
for.
you would be
it,
But ironically
it is
your
thinks that! that your personality does not control you; you identify
is
an important distinction to make. As you grew up you
is
forgot true self to the degree needed to
By that process, you chose dominant reality.
It
was
The reason why
choice.
And it is
is
what
still
life
choice.
important
will appear
your personality's reality real in your
with the people around you.
with your personality as the
to identify
this distinction is so
choose to identify with
in
fit
most
is
that whatever you
real to you.
by choosing
it.
If
You make
you choose to
keep identifying with personality, limitation and separation will continue to be the building materials of
There
is
is
situations
and experiences
in your
life.
nothing wrong with identifying with personality.
genuinely a fine limitation
all
way
as
to
live.
divine
as
Personality
is
as divine as true
urdimitedness.
however,
If,
It
is
self,
and
you
are
uncomfortable with the confines of limitation and find yourself yearning for
more expansive experiences, you can choose
unlimitedness as well. identify in
the
It
doesn't have to be "either/or."
with unlimitedness greater
transformation on
truth its
own.
in addition to
alongside
the
limitation. lesser
to
identify
with
You can choose
to
Remember, bringing
truth
will
catalyze
JOURNEY INTO FORM
Choosing what you identify with
is
done over and over every day.
Each issue you face brings you the opportunity to make sincere choice to
open to true
Everything in this book
You can use
life.
purposeful
this
book
89
a conscious
and
self.
about inviting true
is
as a
manual
self to
be
real in
your
reminding yourself to be
for
— and creative— about directing your intention and choosing
your reality.
23
Choosing Your Reality The new
reality
merging of unlimitedness and limitation,
the
is
What will it mean The way to find out is
formlessness and form, in your awareness.
for
personally? For the planet as a whole?
to keep
living
and paying
you
attention.
All people are preparing, consciously or unconsciously, for dramatic
changes in their
lives.
For some the change may come slowly and for
others quickly, but for everyone
it is
dramatic change.
No one is
change because the entire consciousness of the planet
this
is
free
from
making the
shift.
Your consciousness
As your consciousness experiences in your
life
is
manifested externally inyour
shifts,
the
about at the personality life
level.
is
and
something you have no choice
Your true
self is
already guiding you
changes that come with this expansion and growth.
Your challenge during these changes intuitively to a
manifestations
that were created from your old consciousness
will restructure to reflect the shift. This
through the
external
life.
more
is
to allow yourself to shift
refined level of experience, including
more
refined
sight and hearing, and more expansive perceptions of the world around
you.
Then you
will be in synch with the change.
To the degree
that your personality resists your transformation, you
will have difficulty. Understand that there
is
nothing wrong with this
COMING HOME
90
resistance; resistance is part of the personality's expression.
need to fear your necessarily
difficulties;
mean you
inner struggle.
You do not
they will not defeat you, and they do not
They
are off track.
Use those reflections
are simply reflections of your
as reminders to
be patient and caring
with yourself. Just as there
is
no value
no value in fighting the
in fighting the illusion of Hmitation, there is
personality's resistance.
You
can, however, benefit
by allowing your personality its struggle and by extending compassion to it.
self
and
and true
self
Alongside personality's struggle, open your awareness to true
the love that you together, side
by
are.
You can be aware
of your personality
side.
In other words, live the split.
Allow yourself to be aware and
accepting of both the limited and unlimited aspects of your being.
Recognize personality's familiar thoughts and being. Notice its fears reality.
From
feelings, its old
ways
of
and resistance to your movement into the new
there, gently
open to true
self
by sensing
its love,
guidance,
expansive sight, and urdimited being.
At times you will be
aware that you have conscious
particularly
choice about whether to identify with and act from your personality or true
self.
Experiment with choosing true
Each timcyou
let
may
still
self.
be conscious about
situations.
to live in unlimitedness.
when you do not seem to be quite ready or You may catch yourself automatically operating
from the habituated responses and
are doing; staying
can.
be times
able to act from true
too. Just
whenever you
true sclfguidcyour actions,
you strengthen your ability
There
self
it.
beliefs of personality.
That
is all right,
Be honest with yourself about what you
aware allows new growth to come to you
Then acknowledge
that true self
compassionately waiting for the time
is
there,
when you can
in those
patiently and
allow
it
to be of
greater service.
The
transition from personality to true self
is
progressive rather
than sudden, a weave rather than a sharp cut. Don't worry
if
your growth
JOURNEY INTO FORM
doesn't
open
seem
to true
fast
self.
9
enough. You will have innumerable opportunities to
You
are supported in this process
more than you know.
24
Emanations of Light You
are connected at a deeply spiritual level to
desire for spiritual growth.
You
all
fact,
of your being,
all
share your
who
assist
you in your
you are recognized, loved, and supported, in the
by an unlimited number
moment. These beings source of
who
are also .connected to a vast collective of
very wise and loving, nonphysical spirit beings
growth. In
people
life.
of beings of light
and love
are in a state of absolute alignment
They have no
limit in their access to
totality
in every
with the
expanded
consciousness and no limit in their ability to radiate that consciousness to others.
When
beings
are
in
automatically available to fully aligned beings
never
this all
state
who
of
aspire to
tire of giving.
alignment,
their
energy
is
umimited awareness. These
Giving
is
their joy, their natural
ability.
Just as water experiences no effort or fatigue inflowing,
pure spirit does not
tire from giving to you.
These beings completely support you in your
and
are
continuously
emanating waves of
spiritual transformation
light
to
the
collective
consciousness of our planet. These waves of light carry energy patterns that exactly
match the energy patterns
recognizes this energy and receives
it,
of your true
self.
Your true
self
reminding your whole being of
your unhmited nature.
You accept
these emanations by choice. People
who genuinely are not
interested in remembering the unlimitedness of their being in this lifetime will ignore these
go about living their
waves
lives in
of light
and not receive them. They will
whatever other ways they have
set
up for
COMING HOME
92
However, most people
their greatest growth.
interested in standing
that your
waving your arms
here!
I'll
take more
light!
Over
is
with
it
a
receiving pull
When that wave is received, it
and so
wave
of light
Because each wave must be
your
for the person
fully received before it exerts a
release, the
ability to assimilate the light into
then
waves of light, each bringing
more accelerated and expansive consciousness
on the next wave to be
is
it
also generates a pull for the next
on. This creates a natural flow of
it.
spiritual
group consciousness,
of light is received within the
generates a pull on the source so that the next
one,
Your
here!"
shared by countless others.
As each wave
released.
quite
own longing for expanded awareness is
so strong that not only are you standing up, but you are
enthusiasm
level,
up and receiving these emanations.
You may even sense
and shouting, "Over
deep
are, at a
flow can never out-pace your
life.
The flow
is
in
harmony with
you and cannot stimulate growth too quickly or too slowly. In every life,
where
truly are.
moment
it
the love of true self emanates through you into your
creates experiences that remind your personality
Your
beliefs, as
well as situations in your
When
created by identifying with your personality. identify
with those
beliefs
and
life,
who you
may have been
you continue to
situations, usually unconsciously, they
act like mental or emotional blocks that
keep you
can
feeling stuck or unable
to live your true potential.
As you
activate those blocks
When
you will
are ready, the love of true self streaming through
more intensely
you don't understand what
can seem more powerful than experience and
to prepare
is
them
for transformation.
happening, those activated blocks
ever.
Yet,
you allow yourself to
as
move through the blocks, opening
to true self
and the love
that you are, they will be transformed into energy that ultimately
supports you in living from true
self.
This inner transformation will bring change into your outer life to the
who you
thought
you should be or on other people's images of you, rather than on
who you
degree that you need
truly are, your
whole
If
it.
life
true self to set you free.
you have based your
life
on
will change in a sequence orchestrated
You
will be
prompted
to
by your
make new changes
that
JOURNEY INTO FORM
reflect
your true nature. Although the changes can be
difficult, painful,
frightening at times, they lead to your greater fulfillment.
open to your true
self
life
it
may seem
self's
of self
(or all) of the
and the world.
the
all
From
changes you
true
self,
That
is
this
it
— and your
time reflecting
life
who you
true
self's
have an
still
unwavering source of love and well-being within you that any time you open to
and
may be that there is nothing
as real loss or real failure.
underlying
perspective,
some
of fear, loss, despair, helplessness,
perspective, however,
wrong and no such thing greater
to you that
and your basic view
Your personality may have feelings Your true
The more you
are collapsing, or at least shaking: your work, your
relationship, your friendships,
failure.
or
guidance, the clearer that orchestration will be.
During these changes structures in your
93
is
accessible
will be reconstructed
from your
are instead of
who you
are not.
the stability beneath the change.
When you have a life that is based on who you truly are, no amount of change can shakeyou,
and no amount of uncertainty can cause instability.
Your
stability is
no longer based on holding onto
life
in static
form
and trying to keep change from occurring. Instead you have the greater strength of being able to live from your true
self
changing around you and within you. Throughout
no matter what
this transition, all
is
your
thoughts, feelings, and actions that carry intent toward greater spiritual
growth
are instantly supported
support whenever you desire
Do
assistance
Every is
growth goes
You can draw upon
this
in your desire for support
and
spirit.
it.
power
not underestimate the
assistance.
by
request from the heart
When
always given. Always. out, beings of light
and
love,
of all existence automatically respond
and
received instantly and
is
a
genuine plea for greater
your true
self,
and the essence
assist.
Assistance and guidance are given to you through the experiences of
your
life.
come in
Assistance
may come
in
ways you request or
altogether different ways, through
expect.
a set of experiences
Or
it
may
you would
94
COMING HOME
not have thought to ask
for.
You can never know
timing) the assistance will take, but
what
it
for sure
what forms
(or
always will arrive according to
serves your greater purpose.
Keep
in
mind
that in reaching "outward" to spirit for assistance, you
and automatically, reaching inward to the unlimited
are also, naturally spirit of
your
own
you ask
being. In this way, as
you simultaneously align with your true
self.
for spirit's assistance,
The source
of your
assistance only appears to be external.
Outer spirit guidance serves as trainingwheels for your awareness. Your
own unlimited being is
the truevehicle that propelsyou forward.
The miracle becomes more
is
that
real to
the same essence as
when you open to
self,
your personality. Your true
all
things and
connectedness by being One self,
true
is
all
your unlimited nature
self is
beings, earthly
aware that
it is
of
and otherwise. That
unity consciousness. As you open to true
that state of unity emerges into your conscious awareness, and you
experience your oneness with everyone and everything in the world
around you People
— and beyond. whom you previously had seen as
adversaries are
now
seen at
the unity level as companions. Previously overwhelming difficulties
seem to be simply ways
of receiving the vitality of
life.
now
All opposition,
judgment, and separation dissolve into one shared, unlimited essence.
When
your
conscious
connectedness to
all
and no one that
is
awareness
things and
not you.
all
is
beings
And making
simple as making a change in yourself.
9
rooted is
a
in
real to you.
true
There
self,
is
your
nothing
change in your world
is as
JOURNEY INTO FORM
95
MARJORIE "Deep, unresolved grief has been in
my family as long as
Marjorie reveals to the true
self class,
the message that everything
is
of the world.
world
"and depression.
sorrow, but you cover
it
I
I
can remember,"
was
raised with
up with fear
—
fear
Something bad was always expected to happen. Instead of a
of 'goodness',
I
was
raised in a
world
of fear of badness'. Badness
was the norm." Her voice sounds
resigned, as though used to carrying the weight of
her past alone. Marjorie continues,
"My
brother tended to be angry so
took the role of peace maker, but underneath unfulfilled. Since
pleaser, the
good
childhood girl,
I've
the one
really felt sad, angry,
always been the one
who
tries to
everyone other than myself, of course. I've
I
who
I
and
placates, the
keep everyone feeling okay
Who am has gotten lost. To cope, I
learned to retreat." Marjorie' s energy
is
low, but her authenticity
is
riveting. Usually
timid and reluctant to talk "too much", say anything "too depressing", or
up
take
know
"too
the
much time",
full
she has a history of holding back, not letting us
degree of her suffering.
deeply about herself is a
gift.
Now, her
talking so freely
and
We listen carefully as she continues.
my family but no joy. Now, as an adult, even after years of therapy, there's no joy in my life. I don't remember ever having joy find it hard to think of or what it might feel like. In fact, right now "There
was
love in
I
anything that brings
me joy."
She pauses, and then confesses, depression, and no joy for
fear,
my
"I've
created a similar household of
son. I'm afraid I'm passing
him. That's heart breaking for me." This background Marjorie's brother, from
whom
is
it all
on to
emerging because
she has kept distant, caught her by
surprise in a conversation yesterday, verbally lashing out with judgments
and accusations she feels she
"My body.
I
things unjust.
I
didn't deserve.
brother's anger startled me," Marjorie goes on, "and jolted
my
felt hurt, sorrow, and blamed by him. His accusations about had supposedly said and done years ago seemed distorted and
COMING HOME
96
"Yet
anyone
me up
I
did what
who
else
me
—
I
I
absorbing
it in,
took the blame. His treatment of
automatically blamed myself anyway.
I
to him, outwardly or within myself.
and I took
my family, and with
always do in that situation with
gets upset with
but
felt unfair,
I
it
I
felt his
I
didn't stand
anger coming toward me,
and feeling awful."
ask Marjorie what she wants to
instead of awful. "Safety," she
feel
begins.
"Before you continue,"
I
interject, "let's
mention that every time you name a instantly finds that feeling
you, in true
self. It
"As you
consciously receive self
each
you want,
safety.
it's
filling
some
silent
and nurturing you. The
very subtle, even microscopic, because That's okay. Receive
it
and enjoy
it's
time so you can rising
from true
feeling
might be
coming from deep within you.
no matter
it,
within
easy to overlook.
feeling, give yourself
through that tap root,
to
a tap root of energy
Assume the feeling you've named is
it.
want
I
already exists unconditionally
it
happens so subtly that
me
tell
where
feeling
pause with
how
subtle or tiny the
sensation.
with
"Start again
safety,
and
you
after
feel
the safety for awhile, do the
same with the other feelings you want." Marjorie closes her eyes and slowly repeats, "Safety." She takes a deep breath, releases
it,
and is quiet
as she
opens inwardly to
After several moments, Marjorie "Joy."
Her breathing slows
joy, the joy she
names the next
safety.
feeling she wants,
as she waits for the tiny, delicate vibrations of
thought she didn't have, to gently fill
her.
Next Marjorie quietly announces, "Strength." Her posture adjusts curled shoulders roll back and her spine lengthens slightly upward, like a plant greeting morning light. "Creativity." Marjorie's voice is
awakening within it.
"And my true sentences breaks
toward myself. around me.
I
I
I
want
and preferences."
wait during her
spirituality."
free,
want
still
"I
want
quiet,
but a
new
vibrancy
silence.
After just a brief pause, a burst of to be comforting
and compassionate
to allow myself to discover the goodness in
to feel that
it's
is
okay
for
me to
discover
me and
my own desires
JOURNEY INTO FORM
Often
when we
say
it— and
can't
don't have
responds by trying to
more than we think
we want have
it.
something,
We
we
are reinforcing our lack.
If
someone
how we can have it, or that we already have it we do, we argue or try to convince them they are tell
us
remain fascinated with our
position, Yet,
door to
becoming more
what Marjorie is
As long
as
we
receptivity,
feeling each of her phrases as
and
I
and beckoning
receptive,
it
having,
hold that
of opening a
into our
life.
That's
doing.
To deepen her
closed,
not having.
we are not receptive to the goodness we want. other times, we say we want something as a way
it,
we
are really saying that
mistaken. Ironically, while the other person shows interest in our
we
97
I
suggest that she
I
them back
say
let herself
to her. She nods, eyes
and compassionate toward
begin, "Comforting
pause, giving her time to receive her true
sink into
self's
still
myself."
I
deep, subtle feelings of
comfort and self-compassion as they rise to her awareness.
When she nods that she has been feeling them, in
me and around
When
me."
I
she nods again,
I
continue, "Goodness
wait, enjoying the openness I
add her
final phrase,
I
sense in Marjorie.
"My own
desires
and
preferences."
Until now,
all
these qualities Marjorie wants have been present deep
within her, unnoticed. The
way
fish idling at the
bottom
of a rushing
mountain stream go unseen by someone standing on the bank, Marjorie's personality couldn't see through rejection to the calmer,
constant rush of distress and
its
abundant depths of true
self.
Today she
is
self
calming
the water and peering under the surface.
When
Marjorie nods that she
is
ready,
I
continue,
"I
want you
to
imagine something with me. Imagine that the substance that makes everything, even words,
is
nurturing
meaning, are made of nurturing of
it.
life
life force. All
words, no matter their
force and, therefore, are little carriers
With this image, let's revisit your conversation with your brother.
"Yesterday your ears heard a string of hurtful and unfair words, but right life
now let's
force
see those
words
coming through the
meaning of the words, using
as a string of tiny formations of nurturing air to you.
them
Your brother
to criticize
related to the
and blame you. But now
COMING HOME
98
you're relating to the
words
purpose of the words
is
At the true
in a deeper way.
to carry nurturing
life
the real
self level,
force to you.
That
is
the
purpose of everything.
"With each words. As each
breath, take in the nurturing
word
no matter
arrives,
force gives itself to you, helping I
When
its
nurturing
life
yourself."
sense she
I
word makes you
add, "Each
and more trusting
yourself,
before
I
force carried in the
meaning,
you to be kinder to
pause to give Marjorie time.
speak again,
its
life
is
me
ready for
to
kinder and sweeter to
feel
of your goodness, than the
word
that arrived
it."
Marjorie continues
words transform from
silently, letting yesterday's
harmful to healing. Then, with a long exhale, she volunteers,
"I
feel
stronger about myself."
Her chest expands with
and she says slowly,
a fresh intake of air,
the awareness awakens within her, "This feels like pure being. simple, easy state. I'm just being. Nothing's causing
natural state of being." She
A
few moments
fundamental, primal. with.
It's
to defining
who
was the
I
can
it
tell
that
you can
here talking to
I
want
have
it," I
want
pure being state
this original, safe,
now, not externals
"It's
into the world
personality got formed.
it,
It
to nurture
that this pure being
it,
not cover
it
"I
up any
can
"and
it is
you.
Now, while
still
you're
in your pure being state, think of the world. Tell state
like I'm starting all over as
remain strong,
my
came
me with calm certainty,
agree,
what it is like to be in your pure being "I feel
of
I
elaborates,
state. It's me."
still
me
my
to age one or two, prior
and know, by feeling
more." She opens her eyes and looks at
"Yes,
had it up
I
much
Now
started with.
have this pure being
just
it's
state!
uncover
a relief to
state
I
she
closed,
still
the formless state
was, before so
I
was my original feeling "It's
eyes
feel this is
just pure being.
—
a
quiet again.
is
later,
I
it
It's
as
and creative
like other
an
and think of the world." infant," Marjorie answers. "I
— the state
for me.
I
me
want
I
began
it
to define
this life
people and circumstances."
with
— to
me and my life
JOURNEY INTO FORM
Marjorie and
choice in her daily doesn't
make me feel
how
talk about
I
life,
as
she might support this important
and she comes up with
good about myself
original pure being state,
I
won't take
it
99
as whole
a standard: If something
and as
as an imprint or let
it
safe in the world, as this
define me.
Q The next day I've
got to
tell
state.
phone
from Marjorie.
call
you what happened to me today.
that yesterday, a
being
get a
I
few hours
after class,
I
First,
I
meditated on
know
amazed. Amazed.
have to mention
my
original,
that for the past three years
down
awful about a situation in which
I
me
to her office a
do
am
pure
Then this morning I woke up feeling connected with it.
"Second, you have to
to
"I
a project that
beginning, but then
my
me
took
really let
client's office
a client.
All
lot.
I
have
felt
She had hired
was good
in the
manager started being rude to me.
my work and my positive know how to stand up for myself or
His rudeness escalated into undermining relationship with
my client.
handle the situation.
manager Instead
I
until finally
I
didn't
became more and more intimidated by the
I
I
couldn't muster the courage to go back there.
retreated, procrastinating so long that
Without even
telling
didn't finish the job. I
just faded away.
before, so
I
I
felt terrible
how I handled this situation. months,
"Finally, after several
to the client, but client's office,
ruin
I
my client or giving her a reason,
had always been responsible and professional about
office
I
returned to the company to apologize
never got to say a word. As soon as
I
she snapped at me, 'Don't say
anything.
I
I
walked into the
don't
want you
to
my day. Just get out!'
"Even though
mean.
I
didn't
I
had been
weak and
continued to
wrong,
know how to respond,
to diffuse the conflict. feeling
in the
took in
I
all
so
I
I
also
around town. Seeing her was
hadn't expected her to be so
didn't speak
up
for myself or try
me and left inside me and
her bad feeling about
awful. For three years
feel awful.
I
became
I
let it all fester
afraid of
my worst fear.
running into that client
COMING HOME
100
"Well, today store, there she
it
happened. As
I
came around an
was. Her back was to
me
"At
first
was
I
scared, so
then some peace, decided that
if
so
I
I
felt
chose to put
I
did
— and even
she
if
instantly
genuine, and
me
no longer works
I
that she
differently over time, even
it
my
body.
in another aisle or in
me
—
I
would respond
bigger than the conflict,
there.'
all
'How
smiles,
was happy
had come
making
woman
rolled her cart next to
Her
nice to see you!'
to see her, too. Right
to understand the situation
a point to say,
She had extended
'And that
a bridge
manager
office
between
us, so
I
with her.
apologized for not finishing the job, and
we talked easily,
resolving
the old issue and confirming our good feelings about each other. As
"It felt like a
miracle to me.
had dreaded
we
opened her arms, and we hugged.
said our Goodbyes, she
I
I
my pure being in charge.
warmth was
stepped onto
to
My pure being felt
was
meeting
me
calmer right away, and
felt
was mean
mine. She said, 'Hello!' and
told
I
come upon each other
"Sure enough, a few minutes later the
"I
she might spot
took a few breaths to center myself into the
I
yesterday in class.
state of pure being.
away she
knew
balance, and well-being spread through
she and
the checkout line
my
I
else in the store.
state of pure being
from
grocery
as she talked to a clerk in the
produce section. She didn't see me, but
somewhere
aisle in the
believe
I
it
was no coincidence
for three years occurred the
day
after
I
that the
discovered
my state of pure being. What an amazing synchronicity! For three years I suffered because my personality didn't know how to handle that situation. Then as soon as found my pure being, the part of myself that 7
I
could
handle the situation, the opportunity manifested.
"And I'm proud
of myself.
I
used that opportunity by dropping into
my pure being and choosing to face my client and our unfinished business from that place in myself. In my pure being, there was no conflict, no shame, and no emotion
—just different kinds of well-being.
stay in that well-being no matter
what happened, even
mad and wanted
was rooted
to
chew me
out.
situation manifested well-being."
I
in
if
I
decided to
she
was
my well-being,
still
and the
PartV
9
CREATING YOUR WORLD Abundance and Manifesting
25
Longing for Abundance Abundance
is
rich fulfillment
Satisfying the longing for
and prosperity
areas of your
all
life.
abundance begins by compassionately hearing
your personality's long-muffled
opening your heart to a
in
cries for greater self-love.
level of inner
It
requires
need you may have ignored since
childhood.
Being without self-love creates an inner barrenness, which manifests circumstances of lack in your outer Me.
cannot have love of
and loving
all
who
of
I
your inner experience
If
cannot have the inner richness of
self; I
may be
am," then the outer experience
have the richness of what
I
want most
To not
heal this
mean being
empty
"I
being
cannot
in external reality, either." So
are likely to manifest recurring situations of not having
love or friendship or whatever
fully
is "I
you
enough money or
would bring a greater richness
to your
life.
you must look within. Looking within does
spot,
critical or coldly tracking
down your
heal. Instead gently turn
them, for harshness does not
and look with tenderness and compassion
to see
flaws to get rid of
on an inner
how you
light,
can love
yourself more.
Pretend for a
moment
that a small child
whom you deeply love comes
running to you, crying, and climbs onto your can see right away that this
child's
does not believe that she or he
Would you Instead,
beauty.
what
is really
is
lovable.
And pretend
that you
self-esteem, that this child
What would you do?
scold this child for lacking self-love? Certainly not.
you would hold
forgotten
problem
lap.
a
You have
this child close
wonderful being you
and are.
say, "I see that
you have
You have forgotten your
forgotten your vitality, your magic, your lovability.
I
you, to teach you, to remind you.
I
my love for who you who you truly are, and
allow
are to
see
I
fill
love you.
I
hold you in this love so you can
remember to love and treasure yourself."
Do the same for yourself. Be willing to hold yourself on your lap,
so to
speak, and look into the being that you are with that same love and
compassion. Simply see where you have forgotten your
own magic, where
COMING HOME
104
you have forgotten the love that you are and the beauty you carry within.
Then make
a
commitment
to rediscover
it
in
some way each
day.
26 Receiving Abundance
Abundance
a given in
is
your
life,
but you
removed from abundance and assume
it
may
know
not
exists
it.
You may
somewhere "out
feel
there,"
perhaps for other people, perhaps as something you are trying to create or attain,
something you are trying to break through
You cannot love of
life.
abundance
of,
Abundance
Always. The trick you.
is
is
to
open to
it,
Abundance is not something is
same
is
its light
know
to get;
that
it is
and around you it fills
already.
you, and let
something to
it
guide
receive.
unconditionally present and available to
When you want the sun, you
simply step into
an ever-present, unconditional quality
radiating through you
is
Like the sun, abundance all.
break through to abundance. Like the
create, attain, or
you are made
to.
do not try to create
it
or control
and warmth and allow yourself to
true of abundance. Until
now you may
feel
it.
You
it.
The
have spent your time
standing in the shade, looking around and wondering, "Where's the
abundance?
should be here by now. I'm working hard for
It
it;
where
is
it?" It
may be
time to take some steps out of the shade and into the light
where you can receive the abundance you have been longing for.
9 ATTUNEMENT Receiving Abundance
1.
Want.
Allow yourself to
feel
your desire
fully.
You may
feel
defeated at the
prospect of feeling your desire without knowing for sure that fulfilled. If
your response to that feeling of defeat
is
it
will be
to stop wanting,
you
CREATING YOUR WORLD
also are stopping the energy to create fulfillment.
1
05
You can proceed no
further without reclaiming this vital energy of wanting. Fully allow
all
your true desires to come forward, regardless of whether they seem
be fulfilled.
feasible or likely to
There to
is
a correlation
want and the degree
between the degree
to
which you allow
to
which you allow yourself
yourself to have.
honestly allow the desire to grow as large as the desire
grow, you are more likely to allow the manifestation of
When you open
the channel of creativity on the wanting end,
it
will
When you
itself
wants to
its fulfillment.
open naturally at
the manifesting end as well.
Feel
2.
When
desires begin to be felt fully, other feelings
Allow yourself to
want
them. Sometimes
feel
this for myself,
it
may
surface, too.
will be sadness or despair.
and wanting makes me
feel
sad for
all
the times
"I I
my life, of what I have been missing for so long." "It feels futile. I don't know how to get what I want, and I probably can't have it anyway." There may also be anger. "Why didn't I let myself have this sooner? I am so angry to have lived my life in this way!" Or "It's someone else's fault that I didn't get my needs met. I'm angry that they kept me from getting the goodness I wanted!" It is have not had
it." I
feel
barrenness in
important that you allow such feelings
be
felt
— and others — to come forward to
and expressed. Give them compassion
(Note: Enlist the help of a
you need one. This
is
safely, or if you're
good support person, or even
especially important
might overwhelm you,
if
as they reveal themselves.
they might be
if
a therapist,
if
your feelings frighten you or
difficult to
contain or to express
tempted to take negative action toward yourself or
another person. The use of feelings in this exercise
is
extreme or to be disruptive to you or to someone
not meant to be else.
Take good,
compassionate emotional care of yourself, which includes reaching out for help
and support when you need it.)
COMING HOME
106
Move.
3.
move with these feelings. Most emotion comes with an
Let your body
impulse to move, even
if it's
just facial expressions or
walking in a particular way: perhaps dragging your skipping.
the impulse
If
you need to, but allow your body
if
What
is
important here
is
healthy way. The physical body
letting
the
is
its
is
stomping, or
sad, frustrated, or
expression.
your feelings move through in a
home
of emotions;
All emotions have physical, chemical,
live.
feet,
— or
Have your support person
angry, give yourself permission to do that.
with you
who
to cry like a child
is
arm gestures
and
it is
where they
cellular effects. It is
important to allow the motion of the emotions to go through the body so
you can be
clear, integrated,
and open to new experience
at all levels.
Trust.
4.
Trust yourself. Trust the desires you have had, trust the feelings you
have had in response, and trust the movement that has taken place.
been
real, it
has been you,
This step
is
a
hand to
how it feels.
with abundance to
abundance that
is
a tendency in people
with themselves. The two go
is
why it
is
yourself,
you are more open to that
important to stay with yourself throughout
and to
trust yourself.
Let Go.
Now
let
it
completed the one through
go.
Take
circuit.
four,
The
a deep breath, active
this point
you have given yourself
done. In following steps
a gift.
You have
cleared,
You need do no more.
you may have your marching boots on, ready to charge
forward and pursue the things you want. still
and notice that you have
work has been
attuned, and aligned with yourself.
that
who feel out
personally meaningful and deeply enriching for you.
this progression of experiences
At
is
lose contact
you remain in touch with
abundance. That
5.
There
thick and
When you are out of touch with yourself, you are less open
in hand.
When
has
has been important.
way of staying present with yourself through
thin, regardless of
of contact
it
It
wants to be expressed or
If
a healthy
that
is
a true desire
— motion
impulse to take steps toward
CREATING YOUR WORLD
reaching a
goal— then follow
taken. For example,
it.
In fact, often there
the abundance you
if
want
is
is
07
1
outer action to be
increased financial
success in your business or a community of friends
who
share your
passion for spiritual growth, you will need to take practical action that in synch with the fulfillment of your
desire.
is
Take that action from the
abundance-based energy moving through your body. That
is
empowered,
abundance-based action.
However,
if
your personality
state of anxiety, or
from distrust
is
pressuring you to do more from a
of yourself
completed, give yourself permission to
let that
You have done your work, and you can
illusion.
back about your
life,
watching
and the process you
sit
been the steps
and step
effects of
receive.
your abundance process to come to you in your
six
is
moving out
for
simply receiving
may come
important thing
is
may come
to
it.
wanted
or
it
may
be receptive; the essence of your desire
fulfilled,
have
five
of the shade into the light of abundance,
to you in the form you
comes back to you It
empowered,
Allow yourself to receive what you want. Steps one through
It
can go
Receive.
Allow the life.
an
It is
down now. You
for opportunities to take
abundance-based action, and allowing yourself to
6.
pressure go.
just
and you
can't predict
in ordinary circumstances,
how
not. is
The
what
that will happen.
words someone says to you
in
conversation, a chance meeting, a synchronistic event, or a change in
someone's attitude and actions toward you. Or
it
may come
as a special
opportunity or an impulse you get to take a specific action. Or you
may
suddenly have an "Aha! moment" that juices you with inspiration and a greater perspective. Be open to recognizing and receiving the fulfillment of your desire in
whatever way it comes to you.
COMING HOME
108
The
feeling of desire arises because
you
feel
separate from
what you
want, as though a glass shield stands between you and abundance. You
can see the abundance on the other
side.
You can
occasionally see other
people going up and taking part in the abundance, then turning around
and
telling
you
how
to do the same. Yet the glass remains.
with these six steps can help the glass see that
Then you
dissolve.
Your work
will begin to
what you wanted was never far away, never separate from you
at
aU.
27 Manifesting
You already have unlimited does.
You
this very
Everyone
are involved in the creation of physical reality all the time.
moment,
moment and
just
by being who you
the next and the next.
next six months of your possibility, just
life
are,
You could
you are creating the next say, for
you are unlimited
are in this spirit
Through your physical body your
physical reality, and through your physical
example, that the
moment.
who
has come into physical
spirit
communicates with
body your inner
creative force
moves outward to the physical world to manifest. Most important
know
about this process
is
At
are created already, not as fate but as
by your being who you
In your essence,
form.
ability to create in physical reality.
that your experience of self is
what
to
creates every
aspect of life.
Everything is energy.
Physical matter
energy.
is
Every image, thought,
feeling,
Thoughts are energy. Feelings are energy.
and belief you consciously or unconsciously
hold about yourself carries a specific energy formula or pattern to
These energy patterns are complex and your experience of
self,
which
reality creates the outer reality
Your auric
field is
is
real.
your inner
you
live
Collectively they reality.
it.
make up
This ongoing inner
with every day.
the energy space extending outward from your
CREATING YOUR WORLD
body.
It
links your inner experience
1
09
with the outer world. Through your
auric field, the precise energy patterns of your experience of self are
transmitted outward to the physical world. They are a template for everything that manifests as your
life.
These energy patterns create
your outer experiences (situations, relationships, prosperity, your responses to them. So everything you encounter in
life is
etc.)
all
and
a reflection
of your inner experience of yourself! In that way, your experience of
everyone and everything as
your experience of
self
is a
mirror for you and
also subject to
is
change
changes.
Whatever you emanate, you mil encounter.
If
you are aware of yourself as
love, for
example, those energy patterns
transmitted outward through your auric
are
encounter in your the world
than
it
If
life
may seem
will be the manifested experience of that love.
to you a loving place, or at least a
would seem if you were less aware
you are not aware
yourself,
of yourself as love
may encounter
situations over
more loving place
and do not cherish and honor is
transmitted outward
world and manifested
field into the
Then
of yourself as love.
your energetic pattern of "nonlove"
through your auric
and what you
field,
in your
and over in which you
life.
You
are not loved,
honored, or treated kindly. Life can then be a frightening experience.
Consider also that your experience of actions you take in
life. If
you carry conscious
self will
self-love,
determine what
you will tend to
take actions that are loving and wall then reap more loving responses
from the world.
Understand that you
are not
bad or flawed
for not loving yourself
more, only hungry for the nourishment you deserve. in such limitation,
it is
When you are caught
always possible to open to greater experience.
Remember, the change begins within you.
You alter your patterns of outer manifestations by alteringyour inner experience of self
COMING HOME
110
Be willing to allow yourself greater
what
life
seems to be giving you or
love.
telling
Nurture
you about
self-love in spite of
yourself.
Then you
automatically will be adding more self-love to your energy pattern that
transmits outward for manifestation. After a period of time the world will
seem to change and you will encounter more love
in your
life.
You
will
begin to find yourself treated more honorably and cherished more often.
You
more supported in outwardly living the love that is your true
will feel
nature.
28
Empowering Your Desires Your manifesting energy never stops working and purposeful
for you.
As
a highly creative
you to interact with projected
force, it literally enables
forms of your being everywhere you go. To whatever degree your experience of
self
relationships will
includes inner nurturing and support, your outer
show nurturing and
support.
To whatever degree you
inwardly experience abundance, your outer manifestations will be of abundance. Yet, nothing you manifest in physical reality
and of
itself.
It is all
is
there purely as your reflection for learning and
growth. Every person, thing, and situation you encounter
some aspect
important in
is
symbolic of
of you.
The purpose experience of
self
of manifesting
anything
apparent in physical
is
simply to
reality.
When
make your
you
insist
on
manifesting something for any other purpose, you are at cross-purposes
own nature. That in itself can be frustrating and can leave you wondering, "Why isn't what I want coming to me? Why isn't it with your
happening?"
When
you have that
feeling, let it
level of awareness, to true self. If
and you do not seem
a deeper
you find yourself being attached to
having more money, a relationship, a else,
remind you to drop to
new
to be getting
it,
car, a better job, or
something
experiment with looking
at the
situation differently. Be aware that your desire for the thing (the money,
CREATING YOUR WORLD
relationship, car, etc.) is a desire
from the most superficial
1 1
level of
your
being: your personality.
Although you may be more aware your deeper
levels of self,
most oriented to
your personality carries the
than you are of power.
least
control, has the strongest sensations,
greatest demands, but
it
carries the least true power.
levels of self are progressively
progressively
of your personality
power by simply
shifting
the
and makes the
Because your deeper
more aligned with true
more manifesting power. You can
It is
self,
they carry
activate this greater
your awareness deeper. Attuning to the
following four levels will take you progressively deeper:
(1) Superficial
Desire; (2) Essence Desire; (3) Internalized Desire; (4) Desire for
True
Self.
1.
Superficial Desire
Each superficial desire is a symbol for a greater desire you hold at a deeper
Your personality
is
most
familiar
with
desire for things (and situations) that fulfillment.
This
desire
is
level.
superficial desire,
which
is
the
you assume will bring happiness or
reinforced
by
cultural
messages
that
achievement, material gain, and other people are the source of your well-
being and sense of
Of the four
self.
levels, superficial desires are
noticed most frequently. Yet
they take the most exertion to pursue and are the least satisfying fulfilled.
Recognizing that your superficial desires are incomplete in
themselves frees you to look for your deeper power.
2.
when
Essence Desire
You can empower yourself by going directly to the essence ofyour desire.
COMING HOME
112
It is
easy to
level
by asking
quality in
your awareness drop from the superficial to the essence
let
yourself,
"What
is
the essence of this desire?
What
the
is
my life or the experience of myself that I want from this?"
common desire at the superficial level. Yet money is a symbol for many things. What is the essence level of money for you? Perhaps you believe that when money comes it will bring For example, money
the most
is
you ease in the world. Having your financial needs met can indeed bring certain type of ease. joy.
Or maybe having more vacations would bring you
Or maybe you simply want the feeling The essence
come
into your
of
life
what you want
regardless of
essence
is
of being supported in
life.
would
the feeling or quality that
by getting the thing (money) that you're focused
The ease or joy or support
And
a
how
always a deeper desire than the money
is
often
on.
it
may appear
otherwise, you always want
is.
the
more than you want the thing.
Let your personality's superficial desires serve as your springboard to the essence
Each time you catch yourself wanting
level.
and deepen the dialogue. Remind yourself of the
money" becomes "What essence of life."
Or
it
what
I
may be
really "I
supported in being you're willing to car, job, or
is it I
want
want
who
make
I
really
is
want?
more peace
Oh
truth. "I
yes,
now
to feel supported in the world.
am and
really
this shift,
in having
wanting
I
want more feel
what
I
actually want.
to feel
need."
When
a thing (money, relationship,
it
to
desire.
become
a part
you can stay in touch with what you
When the essence of your desire becomes real to you daily,
stimulates a shift in your pattern of manifesting.
your essence desire integrates into your daily experience of
my
want
I
whatever) automatically reminds you of your deeper
of your awareness every day so
The
it.
(or ease, or joy, etc.) in
Let the essence level of desire be real to you. Allow
it
a "thing," stop
self
life, it
and energetically supports the
As your awareness becomes part
of
of your
direct creation of
what
you truly want.
You can There
is
still
want more money,
nothing wrong with wanting on the superficial
of living in the physical world. But
will
a relationship, a car, or a
somehow make up
for
what
if
new
level; that's
job.
part
you assume that getting the thing
you're missing at the essence level, you
CREATING YOUR WORLD
put yourself on a treadmill of
on the thing can enable you essence level
1 1
dissatisfaction. Staying focused exclusively
to get
it,
yet nothing will have changed at the
because that was not where you put your focus. You will
have gotten the symbol but not the essence that the symbol represents.
You will have the money you wanted, but or support in your
life. If
not have enough ease or joy
even then you do not change your focus to the
essence level of wanting, you
may soon
symbol, another thing, in the hope that If
still
it
find yourself chasing another
will save you.
you wonder why you never quite get what you want, look closely
that dynamic because
it is
basic to manifesting.
Remember
at
that you
always really want the essence more than the thing. As you allow your essence desire to be as thing,
real,
or
more
real, to
you than your desire
you are well on your way to manifesting
3.
for the
it.
Internalized Desire
Essence desire
is
wanting meaningful
internalized desire
is
qualities in your
wanting them
in your self.
Internalized desire brings your focus even closer to
your essence desire
says, "I
want
This support of being
is
"I
want
Home. For example,
if
to feel supported in the world," you can
drop your awareness deeper to the supported by you.
life;
to feel
level
where you want to
more support
for myself
feel
more
from myself."
not based on your achieving any particular outer standard
worthy or deserving.
It is
a basic
need
for unconditional support
of self— a support of self that does not fluctuate according to outer realities
such as your financial situation or other people's feelings about
you. Or,
if
you want more joy in your
you want inner joy that relationships.
is
life,
look within for the level where
not taken away by changes in outer events or
COMING HOME
114
Desire for True Self
4.
Underlying the desires for all things and is
all
essence qualities,
the desire to discover your true nature.
Desire for true self goes something like this: "More than anything,
my
to live from
true self so fully that
everywhere." The desire for true self their deepest longing, Fulfilling
the
surrenders to true
whether they
desire self,
for
experience
I
is
it
true
Imagine
it
as
are conscious of it or not.
with joy and
and well-being.
moment,
so basic that everyone has
means that the personality
self
recognizing
relief,
and source. Your inner and outer experiences merge; force
in every
want
I
living
with
that
it
as its essence
all is
vibrant
awareness
life
daily,
recognizing unlimited spirit as yourself, and as everyone and everything
you
see.
That
is
This true
with
all
freedom. That
self state of
That
is glory.
is
Coming Home.
unity means that you experience yourself as one
aspects of your being and one with
human, animal,
earth, spirit,
and beyond.
already have everything you want.
all
things and
all
When you are in this
beings:
state,
you
And when you recognize your true self
already manifested in the world, manifesting things like money, a car, a relationship, or a job
your return to true
becomes
self,
superficial desires will
You may have able to go for true self
When
if,
in
you have learned to drop beneath
what you've always wanted most, the more
seem less urgent.
a tendency to self.
So don't be surprised
you lose interest in creating some things that had
been important to you before. the symbols to create
child's play.
go for the symbols when you don't
You may not know what your true
may seem impossibly out of reach,
that your true self even exists. So
or
self is,
feel
your true
maybe you simply are not aware
when you
can't get in
touch with the
deeper possibilities, you automatically gravitate to the more superficial ones.
You may even become good
and creating
lots of things in
your
at manifesting life.
on the
superficial level
Yet you are stuck there until you
choose to open to greater depths, to your greater depths, and plunge
in.
CREATING YOUR WORLD
You may
find that
most
of your time
1 1
and energy in working with
manifesting the fulfillment of your desires goes into levels one, two, and three
— and probably in that order. Yet
level four.
way yet
to
move more
still
forth
Working
(or playing!)
it is
important also to be aware of
with the deepening
levels of desire is a
intimately into yourself and to explore
stay connected with the outer world.
between inner and
who you
are,
You can move back and
and deep, and never be in the
outer, superficial
wrong place. There it is
is
no wrong place
in this exploration. All of
it is
you, and
of
all
keep paying attention. The more awareness you bring
valuable. Just
to this process, the
more quickly and deeply you will learn.
29 Relinquishing Control
Your essence
is love.
Furthermore,
all
in innumerable forms. Lets look at
emotion of
love,
that emotion love,
is
it is
physical reality
what
this
means.
is
love manifested
When you
feel
the
easy to think of that as a manifestation of love. Yet
only the tip of the iceberg. All experiences are
made
of
from the most mundane to the most unusual, and most go
unrecognized for the profound potential they
Any
situation in your
life
carry.
is difficult is
that
as
much
a manifestation
of love as is a pleasant one. For example, think of an experience that
brought pain or other discomfort into your distressing
it felt
and
how much you
You may remember how
life.
resisted
it.
You may
still
think of
as a negative experience. Clearly, that situation didn't look or feel as
was for
a manifestation of love, yet
learning— graced
it
was.
for growth.
It
came
When
to
you
it
if it
full of possibilities
you genuinely recognize
all
occurrences as vehicles for love, a quality of richness and surrender enters
your
life.
There
safety that
is
a
deep connection,
a sense of peace, openness,
you cannot find without accepting
this basic truth.
and
COMING HOME
6
Whenyou recognize love in all of life's experiences, you are freed from your belief in nonabundance.
life is love.
may prompt you to think, "Okay, everything going on in my Some of it feels good, some of it feels bad, but it is all love. So
how do
control these manifestations of love to create
This idea
I
more good
experiences and fewer bad ones?"
When
you have experiences that
wonderful, there
feel so
a
tendency to think, "Right
now
things are going just
Things are good." Such a belief implies that
as they should.
not
is
comfortable, exciting, or
feel
good,
going well, that
it
means that something
it is
bad
a
situation.
good or bad, positive or negative, you
wrong, that things are not
is
When
when you do
you think of experiences as
limit yourself
and close yourself
off
from important avenues of growth.
From
the
uncomfortable nothing
is
perspective
urdimited
of
— perhaps you
feel
stuck in pain,
You simply
necessarily wrong.
being in the midst of discomfort. Love
no matter what the situation
You cannot
is
or
when
spirit,
are
or uncertainty
fear,
are embracing
is still
things
life
human
as a
present in that experience,
how uncomfortable it may be.
control your manifesting to the point that you create only
experiences you think are positive, meaning that they feel good to you.
You must allow say to yourself, gives
me
life
"I
to present itself to you without control.
want
to manifest
work that reflects who
the opportunity to express
my
want
to create
my life,"
want
to have loving relationships;
or
"I
openness in
my
Umiting to add,
heart that "...and
I
I
am
someone
else,
the world, or
have not yet
is
bad, or
causes
grief, for
because
it is
if
example,
is
It
also is
want
to experience an
felt in this lifetime."
But
it is
or to believe that
else,"
some kind
in
of failure
by you,
Life.
That type of control makes you expansive experiences
I
am and
and greater ease
financial support
not open to anything
everything painful or tragic
really
true self in the world."
fine to say, "I
more
I
fine to
It is
there is
is
resist
some
of your
pain or loss involved.
often thought of as a
so uncomfortable.
A situation that
most potentially
A
situation that
bad thing
to manifest
causes extreme grief and
CREATING YOUR WORLD
pain
is
wish
called a tragedy.
Your mind may say that you would be crazy
something that brings you
for
deeper wisdom, your true
and open the heart
self
grief or great pain.
knows
And
to
yet, in its
that grief can cleanse the system
in a powerful way. So
experience of grief to yourself because of
all it
you may actually will an has to
Understand that you usually do not will
offer.
grief (or pain, illness,
and so on) to yourself at the conscious, personality level. In fact,
suffering,
your personality will emphatically part in their manifestation. But
most
1 1
resist
such experiences and deny any
remember that your personality
superficial aspect of your being (the
therefore, has the least true power.
most unaware
Your true
self
is
the
of true self) and,
much greater power
has
in manifesting. It uses this powder to create precisely the situations that offer
your personality the most perfect growth. At that
compassion and expansive
insight,
you will
all
deep
level of
your experiences to
yourself.
Applying
this
concept can be tricky for the personality
7
completely understand
concept of
you
it.
is
"I
your ow n
if
situation,
important that you do not use the
— perhaps
If
you find yourself
a divorce or loss of a loved
one
that
is
an inappropriate use of the concept of creating
Immediately stop and give yourself compassion; open to
reality.
the love that you
Or
doesn't
created this situation" and feeling like that means something
wTong with you, T
it's
create your reality" against yourself.
in a distressing situation
thinking
So
w ho 7
,
are.
you find yourself talking to
a friend w^ho is facing a distressing
perhaps a serious health challenge, and you are thinking, "Well,
everyone creates their to happen", that
is
reality7 so ,
my friend must have willed this problem
inappropriate, too. Again, stop and give yourself
compassion—because even though your
friend
is
the one with the
problem, you are in distress, too. It is a
sure sign you are in distress
creating reality
make
someone
which
about
either you or your friend flawed or deserving of
distress— neither of which or
when your assumptions
is true.
Opening to self-compassion w hen you
else is in distress will take
7
you deeper into your true
inability to is the antidote to the personality's
make loving
self,
sense of
COMING HOME
118
a disturbing situation.
Always be interesting
most compassionate
in the
and empowering ways to understand how you create your
It is
reality.
never appropriate to use spiritual concepts
to create feelings of blame, shame, or
inadequacy
in yourself or others.
Every thought, conscious or unconscious, directing your thoughts, you can use their
and
guidance in your
its
life.
powerful. By consciously
power
with true
to align
self
This alignment can be particularly effective
in transforming your distress.
For example,
personality difficulty, you can stop for a
and
is
when you
moment, take
—without denying any of your distress — choose
are facing a
a deep breath,
for that situation to
be a vehicle for deep empowerment. Take a moment to affirm something
open to
like, "I
Through
with true
that
I
am.
this situation,
I
allow the energy of
all
I
align
self
and the love that
I
am.
my true self to move into my
life."
Sometimes you will
feel
Other times you may not
feel
anyway, and pause for a deep subtle that you cannot feel
the effects of this affirmation immediately.
it
anything right away. Trust the thought
shift to
take place, even though
consciously.
Your intention
the shift will take place regardless of whether you feel
happen
at a core level
will noticeably If
and lay the groundwork
match your
it
may be
so
powerful, and
is it.
Subtle shifts
for future experiences that
affirmation.
you have even the most subtle sensation that something has
shifted
— perhaps your spine stands just a
relax a
new feeling of lightness notice it. However however insignificant it may seem, acknowledge it. "I open to true
subtle, self,
little,
bit taller,
your
facial
muscles
—
or you have a
and I allow the subtlety of it."
When you understand the power of such subtle experience, you a lot less for granted in shifts that
life.
By attuning
occur in response to your directed thought and
begin to understand and witness
moment.
to the subtle inner
how you
affect
take
and outer
feeling,
you
your reality in each
9
CREATING YOUR WORLD
Reality
is
created tiny bit by tiny
Imagine that your current
made up
life,
of microscopic pieces that
your current
life
into place. This
it
reality, is a great
puzzle still
incomplete. Each time
is
new piece to that self-directed way of putting your
within yourself, you take a
a subtle shift
puzzle and press
bit.
you put together. Some areas are
in the process of being assembled, so the puzzle
you create
1 1
is a
together as you go along. By consciously choosing
what you attune
to,
you are creating the content of the puzzle and your life.
30
Owning Your Power to Create As you think about consciously creating your life, you may wish you were better at manifesting. Yet the truth excellently in every
come
to you.
moment! Just look
Whether
lightness of spirit, your
and full
is
it's
that you already are manifesting at
your
life
happiness, sadness,
life is
a rich
and see
fear,
blend of what
it is
how much has
doubt, pain, joy, or to be alive
and vital
of human experiences.
Your very
ability to create in physical reality is
to be here in the first place.
A
would never
ability to manifest
being
who
what has enabled you
does not have the inherent
get into physical reality.
To be here you
must manifest yourself into physical form. After you have done naturally have the ability to manifest anything in your
life,
that,
you
and you never
lose that ability.
You are the creator ofyour life: at
some level you have wanted or needed
every experience you have encountered.
Recognition of this truth conscious manifesting.
been using
all
is
a
fundamental step toward more
allows you to recognize the
It
along and to begin to direct
find that you have
some
it
power you have
with intention. Yet you may
resistance to this idea. Believing that you have
COMING HOME
120
created your
life
and have wanted
that you've created can be
all
frightening to your personality. Your personality often forgets that greater levels of your being are in charge. If
to
you are unhappy with your work and you don't have enough money
pay the
bills,
your personality
such an "undesirable" situation.
may
It
refuse to accept that you created
may
say, "I'd
be stupid to create
this!"
It
may think that taking responsibility for creating your life means having
to
blame
situation
yourself, as is a
though creating such a challenging or uncomfortable
negative thing.
Your personality forgets that the deeper soul of your being views your life
from a different vantage point. Perhaps your personality doesn't want
the situation of having a joy you hate and insufficient
your
may
bills;
money
to cover
but perhaps your soul does choose that situation. Your soul
see that through that challenge
you will learn important lessons
who you truly are, what your spiritual relationship with money is, or how clearing your issues with money can heal a deeper inner struggle. about
The souVs teachings are usually much broader than anything the personality can grasp right away.
You may not be
able to completely understand
about until you have lived personality
—by
living.
it
through. That's
So, until
how your
lesson
is
soul teaches your
you have lived through the deeper
teaching enough to really understand let yourself
what your
it,
let
yourself be unknowing! Also,
surrender to the sense that, somewhere deep within, you have
wanted and created each
situation in your
life
and that you love yourself
enough to open to the learning it brings. If
you think that owning your power to manifest means that you
must blame yourself for your "misfortunes," to
a
new compassion
manifestations
are
that
never
will
wrong
see
if
you can open your heart
gently melt or
bad.
the
self-blame.
Your
They may sometimes be
uncomfortable, painful, or overwhelming, but they always are for a deeper purpose. Always.
Maybe you
are used to
blaming others (other people or outer
CREATING YOUR WORLD
circumstances) for some of your difficulties or pain. This
is
a very
2
1
human
thing to do, and almost everyone has this tendency.
Owning your power
to manifest disrupts this pattern of blaming others,
and your personality
may respond with resistance to this change. Three major forms of resistance may
surface.
Fear ofShifting the Blame.
1.
If
your personality needs to blame other people or circumstances
"He
is
the cause of my unhappiness." "You can't buck the system." "That's
just
how life
is."
—
will be afraid to let go of outer blame, as though its
it
defenses are being taken away. Here the basic premise somebody's fault; belief, if you
That
feels
if it's
not their fault then
take the blame off others
it
it
is,
"It
must be
must be mine." Within that
automatically
falls
back onto you.
uncomfortable, unfair, and debilitating; no wonder you resist
it!
2.
Fear ofLosing Your Power.
Your personality may assume that taking your
life
means automatically
her behavior.
If
responsibility for creating
letting everyone else off the
hook
for his or
you hold yourself accountable, but think you no longer
can hold other people accountable for themselves,
have power and you don't. You
feel
it feels
as
weakened and forced
though they
into a passive
No wonder you resist this, too!
role.
Fear ofBeing Stuck.
3.
You may have
a
hidden
belief that
something uncomfortable in your real.
The
flip side of
that belief
have created and face about
it
and
it
is
life, it
repeating the pattern, caught in
you avoid responsibility
if
you do claim what you
you won't be able to do anything
You assume it
for
away— or at least be less
will go
the fear that
straight on,
you'll just feel bad.
if
for good.
that you will then be stuck
Here
again,
you
resist.
COMING HOME
22
Ironically, in spite of these beliefs, to the degree that
yourself from whatever you have manifested in your
continue to manifest yourself,
it.
When
do not want to look
"I
acknowledge that I've created continue
to
create
that
yourself from your manifesting
weaken your current
life
and
I
difficulty.
life
create
you create what you have, you distance
power (which
is
also
what you want.
from
it
your creativity) and
Or,
if
you
your
reject
into something new, you will find
seem to get away.
It is
by
fully
embracing your
and loving yourself in the midst of it that you heal what needs
to be healed, that you free yourself attract
You unconsciously
own your creation.
to you
try to escape
that you never quite
current
draw
ability to
likely to
my power to manifest: do not want to the difficulty in my life," you are likely to at
very
rejecting the idea that
you are
you consciously or unconsciously say to
experiences over and over until you
By
life,
you distance
and are empowered to create and
something new.
Living
is
the act of surrendering to
and exploring
the lifeyou already have,
learning to love yourself in the midst ofallyour creations.
If
you completely accept that you have created your
your creative power. Changing your can look
at a difficult experience
happened to me, and it Yet
I
see
feels as if
I
and sincerely
from the heart of my being that
much
I
you embrace simpler.
You
say, "It feels as if this
manifested
wisdom and love
this.
this in I
my life.
accept that
I
I
open to
you continue to be unconscious of manifesting everything
in your
the learning
life,
then becomes
would be crazy to want
created this experience out of deep
If
life
life,
for myself.
it offers."
you continue to
feel that
things happen to you. But as you allow
yourself to acknowledge and align with your deep creative power, you free yourself to manifest
more consciously and compassionately.
Another way of saying
this is that
when you
surrender to the creator
within, you surrender to having created everything in your yourself instead of judge yourself in the midst of your creation,
life.
You
no matter
love
how
CREATING YOUR WORLD
comfortable or uncomfortable your
who
power. People
can do
it
life
may be.
This surrender
need to be told very
is
23
an act of
about
little
1
how
to
manifest.
Surrender feeling of
your
life
is
not just mental or emotional.
life
and immersion in love of yourself
or even that
yourself in the
create
much
deeper.
It is
the
complete immersion in the experience of yourself as creator of
This love does not necessarily
your
It is
mean
in the midst of your creation.
that you love what you've created in
you have to be comfortable with it, but that you love
midst of it
what you want
all.
From there you
for yourself in the future. In fact, as
immersion, whatever you think and deeply instantly put into the
will intuitively
programming
feel
know how to
you
sit
in that
you want in your
for future manifestation.
life is
When you
have the experience of yourself as manifestor, you are able to consciously direct that manifesting ability to enrich any area of your
life
you choose.
31
Transforming Your Blocks
Major transitions are not always Sometimes
as
easy. It takes
you go through transformation,
time to
it
live
new
truths.
seems as though every
personality pattern that ever held you back becomes stronger or comes at
new
you from
a
memories
of being
angle.
You may
find yourself caught in feelings or
unloved and alone. Emotional pain and despair may
surface. Rigid beliefs of "can't have"
the better of you for awhile. You
and "don't deserve" may seem
may become
to get
confused, frustrated, or
doubtful that you are making progress. It's all
right
if
this happens. It does not
ground or that you will not be successful
mean
that you are losing
in your spiritual growth.
It
simply means that you have been willing to drop into yourself at a deeper level.
This commitment to
new depth
is like a light
that shines into the
dark corners of your unconscious, flushing out everything at that level that is still holding your personality back and blocking its awareness of true
self.
This
is
your "shadow," unclaimed aspects of your personality
where you have been
afraid to "turn
on the
light" before.
Now, out
of self-
124
COMING HOME
love,
you are allowing these issues to come forward into the
light of
awareness to be faced and embraced.
Each area of darkness
is
an offering
to the light ofyour true being.
Each transition through the darkness performed from great
self-love
is
a sacred rite of passage,
and willingness to become whole no
matter what the challenge. You are moving into greater abundance; open
your heart to yourself and proceed, allowing each shadow to make
its
way to the light as it is drawn out for healing. In the midst of this transition, your personality's inner blocks to fulfilling
your true desires can seem strong. Understand that no block
real block; that
is,
no block has power of its own.
because you experience
Your blocks
are
the
You can
limitation.
it
where your personality
though your personality has the most the most superficial aspect of your
it is
always has the least true power. As
power comes from the deepest core self.
As you move inward,
with
identifies
it.
feel as
control over you, but because it
strong
each block by inviting a deeper, more
diffuse
unlimited experience alongside
being,
a
and you believe your experience.
that way,
areas
Sometimes you may
A block appears
is
we
have seen, the greatest
of your being: your unlimited true
or deeper, from your personality, each level of
awareness carries greater truth and, therefore, greater power. In other words, the more closely aligned with true
power it
"I
around
If
the more
may
levels
more
superficial belief.
So
belief in hmitation ("I can't have") alongside
the deeper truth of essence desire ("I
and
deeper awareness will always carry
time, will transform the
you hold your personality's
abundance
you allow yourself to hold two
a given issue, the
more power and, over
It
is,
can't have" can remain, undisturbed,
have what you want.
still
of awareness
if
your awareness
carries.
For example, the belief
you can
self
("I
choose greater ease") or greater
am willing to have"), the deeper truth will prevail.
take time and repetition
— remembering
to attune to the
CREATING YOUR WORLD
125
deeper level whenever a block seems to be stopping you
—but sooner or
later the deeper truth will transform your block. That
why you do
have to reject or fight your block. the deeper
level,
is
not
When it becomes your habit to open to
your block will be transformed naturally by the greater
power of the deeper truth.
Truth always transforms nontruth
The truth shadows
of your being
a brilliant light that will shine into the
is
of your personality, transforming the dark to light
You make your
offer those
shadows
When you
recognize a Hmiting belief or desire,
to
it.
offering let
whenever you
with your awareness. your awareness move
to a deeper level, to a greater belief that already exists along with the
limited one or a deeper desire below the superficial one.
As the
greater truth transforms the lesser one, the energy that
went
into maintaining your limitation goes into expanding your awareness. Similarly, all the old energy that
your
way now
serves
seemed to work against you or block
you by clearing your path and propelling you
forward into greater growth. So, alongside the limited belief of
the goodness
something
I
Remember what you
greater.
truly want.
even though your personality I
feel that
support in
though
I
my
cannot have and do not deserve
I
want; everyone gets to have what they want but me," add
remember what you
though
tt
truly are: love.
Then allow
tells
life. I
am willing to
always thought
it
that love,
yourself that true wanting
you that you cannot have
cannot have and do not deserve
I
From
receive support: "I
was meant
it, I
it.
"Even
want the feeling of
want joy in
for others rather
my life
even
than for me.
I
want joy anyway, and Ym willing to have it."
When limitations
you do is
that,
you are empowering
ever truly stopping you.
yourself.
The universe
is
None
generous, and you
can always have what you deeply want. You just need to be will find that willingness as you open to true
As you move that
of your
willing.
You
self.
into this shift of awareness, the mental conditioning
had been holding you back may
still
continue speaking to you,
COMING HOME
126
saying things
like,
"You are not good enough." "You do not deserve to get
what you want." "You cannot have again." Perhaps
limited belief
you also
If
it.
you get
it
you will just lose
who
have people around you
still
by remaining unsupportive
of you. But
it
reflect that
now, even
in the
midst of that old limitation, you have greater choice. Without resisting that limitation, you can add a greater reality to
it,
one that empowers you:
You can allow yourself to have.
When to
push
it
that old, unsupportive voice
away. Simply acknowledge
acknowledge and choose the new
what
I
it
it.
Say, "Here
it is
it!"
Align with the
Then
again."
reality: "In spite of everything,
want, and I'm willing to have
the deeper truth, and feel
comes forward, you do not need
new
want
I
voice, claim
in your body.
When you align this way daily, that new voice becomes as real to you as the old one
— and, in time, even more
real.
Your attunement to truth
deepens, and your overall experience of self grows to include having
you truly want. As
your outer
this takes place,
life
what
begins to shift and
reflect that change.
Keep
in
mind
that things do not change for you because you are a
good person or because you
are spiritual
you dress well or hold good dinner determines what you create in your
your true
self essence, feel
life.
enough any more than because
parties. It
When you
your true
is
your experience of self that
allow yourself to remember
desires,
and receive goodness, so
much more can come to you. Your life becomes richer.
9 ATTUNEMENT Being Creator of Your Life #1
As you go about your life, stop your
life.
for a
moment
several times a
day to look
at
Regardless of what you are doing, thinking, or feeling in the
moment, say
and I love myself in
this
creation." Truly sink into the feeling of being the creator of your
life,
to yourself, "Yes,
I
have created
this,
including the self-love. Doing this perhaps ten to twelve times a day for a
CREATING YOUR WORLD
week
will help bring a shift in your awareness
truly present If
and
in
"Yes,
I
your
27
1
ability to
be
with yourself in your life.
you absolutely cannot go along with the
part of the statement, focus on the
have created this"
love myself in this creation." That
"I
is
the most important part.
When
you
say,
love myself," sometimes you will feel
"I
sometimes you won't; either way
is
all
Sometimes
right.
and
it,
self-love is
noticeable alongside other feelings. Other times stronger feelings and
may completely
physical sensations, like fear and frustration,
shadow the is
feeling of self-love,
which
there nonetheless, whether you feel If
you do not
feel
are looking for the
a
is it
more subtle
over
vibration. Self-love
consciously or not.
the self-love, breathe. Look within as though you
most subtle
feeling of love, then breathe to
notice any love, do not worry.
colors of a sunset.
you find
If
acknowledge and receive It
it. If
does not mean that the love
a subtle
you do not is
not there
or that you are doing the exercise incorrectly. Your act of inner alignment
has power whether or not you are able to will be
working
at a
feel it at the
conscious
level. It
deeper level and evidence will surface in time.
9 ATTUNEMENT Being Creator of Your Life #2
For a week, take some time each day to scan your already have manifested a wealth of
human
life.
Recognize that you
experiences.
feelings are pleasant or unpleasant does not matter.
minutes of scanning your noticing
Whether
the
During the few
you are being present with yourself and are
life,
how much you already have created.
During
this
week,
also
consider
allowing
yourself
temporarily of the desire to change anything about your absolutely necessary. feeling that anything
This exercise
It is
may
life
to
that
let
go
is
not
can be liberating to take a week's vacation from
wrong and that you must do something about it. bring
up the
fear that
you will be condoning
COMING HOME
128
everything in your
mind may want
and
life
to focus
spite of that reaction, see
You may choose affirmation such
from everything all
on change to avoid things if
as
it is.
as they are.
you can allow yourself to take
"I I
to balance the desire for change
Your
But in
a vacation
with
allow myself to receive learning and
my
have created in
life"
have created at this time, and
I
it
from
even wanting, to change anything.
trying, or
to
be stuck with
will, therefore,
I
or
"With
empowerment
self-love,
trust that
it
thought or
a
I
surrender
will guide
growth." As always with affirmations, use wording that
is
me
in
simple and
feels right for you.
The
first
consciously
lesson in being able to direct your manifesting powers to allow
is
what you
away from what you
stop running
allow yourself to embrace your
you
feel
already have done to be enough.
as
You cannot accept
yourself
if
you must run away from what you already have created by
Open your
quickly creating something better. learn from
You
it is.
As you
with right now, you begin to
are living
life
more
that you have manifested.
all
You
heart to the present, and
are complete in this
moment.
are an excellent manifestor already.
ATTUNEMENT Being Creator of Your Life #3
Each night
as
you
lie
down
to sleep, compassionately align with yourself
Feel your
body
relax as you think
as creator of
your
following:
open to true wisdom and compassion
being.
I
"I
align
knowledge
life.
with myself
to
become
as creator
real to me."
most appropriate to you.
and manifestor
of
and
feel
the
in the heart of
my
my life.
I
allow this
Adjust the wording to whatever
feels
CREATING YOUR WORLD
1
29
ATTUNEMENT Being Creator of Your Life #4
1.
Sit quietly for a
few moments, and feel the gentle movement
Allow your attention
breath
to drop into your heart. Feel your heart's
openness and warmth, however subtle
Think or
2.
home
of
feel
the following:
From my
When
may be.
align within the heart of
heart
I
Sit for a
I
call forth this
me fully experience the life I
align
with myself
vibrant and aligned, always 3.
"I
it
deep wisdom and compassion. ...
compassion to help
few minutes
as a creator
my
being,
wisdom and
already have created.
and manifestos
...
I
.
.
am
"
in the reverberations of your affirmation.
you are ready to come out of your meditative
state,
and become aware of your body. Then slowly open your move, and get up
of your
when you are ready.
9
breathe fully
eyes, stretch
and
COMING HOME
30
LOUISA AND ABUNDANCE "I
sure need to experience the abundance of the universe," thought
Louisa, "and fast." She just
moved
was
and he had been paying
out,
several years. Louisa's job
money. Her boyfriend had
in a panic about
was
reliable
and
fulfilling,
the hefty house payment by herself on the income
That night Louisa
household
half the
it
bills for
but she couldn't pay
provided.
and meditated. As her breathing
sat in quiet
became gentler and more rhythmic, she
softly
intended for her awareness
my true self where I know that the universe is fully am a reflection of everything good in the universe."
to go to "the place in
abundant and that
I
As Louisa released her intention and
let
her awareness drop within,
she noticed the subtle well-being of true self circulating lightly within her.
She
let
each breath go into that well-being, gently opening to the
abundance she knew was emerge. It felt
there.
Soon
a tiny feeling of
With each breath, it became more real, calming and soothing her.
natural and right.
With
it
came
a
knowing, without thoughts, that
abundance was her core truth and that her that abundance.
The very next
day, Louisa got
who had heard of her, great offers.
could mold
itself to
a
match
commitment
knowing of abundance into her daily life.
two
calls
from people she didn't know,
asking to hire her as a part time consultant for
their businesses. Louisa hadn't
two
life
As Louisa ended the meditation, she made
to herself to carry this
but
abundance began to
The hours fit
done consulting
easily
much higher hourly rate, and Louisa
in a decade! Yet here
were
around her regular job, the pay was
a
enjoyed the work. Taking those jobs
gave Louisa the financial boost to cover her house payment and other
expenses that popped up over the following years. Opening to true
abundance had become Louisa's foundation the support she needed.
for manifesting
self
and receiving
Part VI
9
ENLIVENED EMOTION The Healing Power of Intense Feeling
32
Emotion Emotion is the current personality.
of
as a Vehicle for Spirit
To the degree we
personality resists or opens to as
circulates through us.
it
of being
emotion it
If
open to emotion, the
either resist or
force
life
emotion
human, which makes is
moving through the physical body and
force
life
restricted there is a loss of the joy
is
seem oppressive and
life
accepted and explored,
— and therefore, unlirnitedness
felt
and integrated
a struggle. If
in a balanced
way,
creates a stronger connection within self as well as a deeper awareness
of the interconnectedness of
Emotions are
so
people and
They have no
fluid.
separate from each other.
opening the
all
Any
deeply
all
things.
set boundaries that felt
emotion has the potential of
way for other emotions. For example,
busy working on
a project for several
chance to be aware of your
you have time
off.
feelings.
keep them
perhaps you have been
months that you haven't had
Then the
project
As your pace slows, you begin
is
a
completed, and
to feel emotions
you did
not realize were there.
Perhaps sadness
is
one of them. As you stay with your
sadness becomes a deep safe place to feel
through the
and
grief,
a support
talk about your grieving.
you notice that
You become aware deeper joy to be
You join
grief.
a
feelings, the
group so you can have
At some point
new joy begins
to
come
as
a
you move
into your
life.
that feeling your grief has cleared the space for the
felt also.
The
fluidity of
ride its current have guided
you into
emotion and your willingness to a
more vibrant intimacy with
yourself. It
also is possible that the grief (or
spontaneously
who
feel or
make you aware
have
felt
any other deeply felt emotion) may
of your connection to all other people
that emotion. Emotion
is
an energy that does not
belong to anyone, does not begin or end within the person
Each emotion flows through
all
who
feels
it.
people, connecting them at the deepest
level of physical awareness.
So, the grief all
you
feel is
not your
grief; it is the grief
people. Similarly, the sadness or joy or love you feel
that flows through is
not yours, but
is
COMING HOME
134
a universal
energy you are tapping into and interpreting in your
As you open
to this emotion in your
of your connection If
you have
with
and
self
becomes
life, it
own way.
a vibrant expression
others.
long-standing pattern of resisting emotion, you
a
probably adopted that pattern in response to early environmental pressure. Perhaps your family upbringing, reinforced society, taught
you to
resist,
deny, or
numb
your
by experiences
feelings. If
environment continues to reinforce your loss of emotional than support you in reclaiming to deeply resisted or
it,
in
your present
vitality rather
you may feel unable to change. Opening
abandoned emotion can feel too threatening without
compassionate, reliable outside support.
You do not have able to do
it
alone.
open
to
If it
was
to
emotion alone. In
you may not be
fact,
a restrictive environment that caused
close off to such an important aspect of your being,
it
you to
may take an equally
supportive environment, one with supportive people, to enable to you to
open it,
You deserve
again.
the joy in
life.
to reclaim your vibrant emotional self and, with
You have every right to an environment
Finding that
environment
support and not giving up
work. Sometimes people
if
is
the
challenge.
for you, too,
up
is itself
important
cannot find the right friends, the right
therapist, the right group, the right technique,"
been true
emotional
Seeking
you have trouble finding it
say, "I
of true support.
to this point, but
and so
on.
Maybe that has
how strong is your insistence?
How committed are you? How demanding of life are you willing to be on your own behalf? How much are you willing to do to find or to create your supportive environment? It
may
not always
does not
mean
possible.
That
it is
is
feel
what you
are seeking, but that
not available. Whatever you truly long for
a given in
you open yourself to
easy to find
life.
How you get yourself to
receive, it is a mirror of
and to reclaiming the brilliance
it,
always
how much
your commitment to yourself
of being fully alive.
Your emotions are sacred because
or
is
they carry spirit.
ENLIVENED EMOTION
1
35
Your personality includes your thoughts, emotions, and physical body as well as your relationship with the outer world and other people. It is
the container you use to carry urdimited spirit as you
To the degree
the world.
move through
that you resist any part of that container,
including your emotions, you restrict your ability to have fully conscious
awareness of
spirit. If
loving care of your
you have aspirations to be highly
spiritual,
take
human self, for that is truly the divine work.
9 33
Love As you came
into this lifetime, you brought
being. Urdimited spirit
was
still
love so complete that there
things and
all
real to you,
was no
memory
of the truth of your
and you carried
separation; you
a capacity for
were one with
all
beings.
As we have already
seen,
you then became acculturated to the
environment in which you grew up (your family, your schools, your
social
environment, and society in general) and took on the beliefs and
was not
experiences that surrounded you. This cultural consciousness
based on unlimited being. In others. in-
fact
told you that you
it
Much of infancy and early childhood was
were
not
one with
spent learning that here
the physical world you are viewed and responded to as though you are
completely separate. You were expected to conform to that reality of separation through your actions, your communication, and your inner experience.
Through that perceived
your sense of all
reality
separation, your sense of self
and
became limited.
That phase in your personality development was pivotal limited consciousness.
adaptation to physical reality and
its
here to be in the physical world.
You accepted
received here and allowed
it
in your
You came
the conditioning you
to affect your consciousness so you could
explore physical reality more deeply.
COMING HOME
136
Now, from
the midst of your exploration of the separation and
limitation of physical reality, you are starting to reopen to greater
memory once more. This time you
are inviting the awareness of true self
slowly to become integrated into your personality, into the aspect of your
being that has embodied the limited consciousness prevalent in the physical realm. At the core of this integration
is
the discovery that you no
longer have to be restricted to choosing between submersion into the
apparent limitation of physical reality or expansion into the freedom of unlimited being.
It
does not have to be either/or anymore. From the midst
of any limited experience,
you can open to unlimited true
You are developing the skill the limited
The
to contain
and the unlimited
self.
and carry both
together.
integration of urdimited being into a reality previously based on
limitation will ultimately be successful throughout the planetary culture.
This success has already been destined, not by some powerful "outside" force or being, but
by the
collective consciousness of all beings involved.
All beings bringing that destiny into reality, including you, have chosen their paths
with
care.
As you reclaim your deep memory things and
beings,
all
you remember that
unconditional love. People level
of true self
who
this
and unity with unity
is
based on
are aligned in true self tap into a deep
from which they are flooded with unlimited love and the
true
Home. This deep
energetically
and
love
spiritually
naturally
with
all
it.
Every person
who
and
love,
feeling of
and connects them
radiates
beings, physical
All people desire this state of truth
conscious of
all
and nonphysical.
whether or not they are
feels a spiritual
longing to go
Home
is
longing for that state where nothing can interfere with the deep, unconditionally loving connection between self and others. painful in the world
is
that there
What
is
so
seem to be too many experiences that
keep people from feeling their true connection with themselves and each other.
ENLIVENED EMOTION
1
37
34
Hate This
is
where hate comes
At
in.
a basic level, hate is
an outlet for the
outrage at being separated from the deeply loving aspect of true
Because of
intensity
its
and extreme discomfort, hate then
also
self.
becomes
another of those separating experiences, adding further to a vicious cycle of disconnection
with
self
and
from
love.
others, the
into defending
As hate blocks your
and protecting
takes you further
yourself,
it
which
reinforces separation
away from conscious connection with true
For a moment, remember a situation
Your
deep, loving connection
world seems more dangerous. More energy goes
feeling in that situation
when you hated
may have been extreme
and
self.
another person.
rage and hatred, or
may simply have been hate in the form of low-grade anger or frustration
that you could not ate at
you day
seem to get
over, the sort of chronic anger that quietly
after day.
Perhaps you thought your hate was due to something specific that
person said or did. deeper into
it
hate brought
No
matter what the hate seemed to be about, looking
probably would reveal that the event that inspired your
up
feelings that
your naturally loving, true
blocked your personality's awareness of
self state.
state of love in reaction to
You
lost contact
with your true
whatever the other person said or
you then
self's
did.
And
lost the ability
because you lost connection with your true
self,
to feel a deep level of unconditional love
and connectedness to other
people, particularly to the person you hated.
Remember, your most connection with safety that
When
is
all
basic, true state is to
be in unlimited love and
beings. This unity brings a sense of inner peace
your greatest treasure.
It is
and
pure, unwavering well-being.
someone does something that stimulates
a response within
you
that blocks your ability to feel loving connection, you feel cut off from
your greatest well-being in a brutal way. Then not only do you
by what the person connection to true
did,
self.
feel
hurt
but you also suffer the injury of losing your
COMING HOME
38
Losingyour natural
ability to love
both yourself and the person is
It is
experience of true
the greatest loss possible.
when someone
threatening
who hurt you
else's
actions can take
away your
your basic sense of peace,
self and, therefore,
safety,
and well-being in the world.
All hate
is
anguish at the loss of the ability
to feel loved
There
from that
terror
is
love. If
and loving
and outrage that someone has the power to cut you
your true state of well-being can be taken away by what
other people say and do, indeed, the world will seem brutal. for the personality to rebalance itself when
it
positioning for battle
is
to defend itself
by
— mentally, emotionally, physically. As you know,
the cultural conditioning of physical reality
at this
It is difficult
feels unsafe.
Often the personality's response to this threat
threatened, you
off
make war. There
you that when you are
more wars happening
are
time than you can keep track
tells
and some
of,
in the
world
are taking place in your
own life. Being at war does not necessarily
way. You
may simply carry on
what they have done of things
done,
to
mean
that you attack in an outer
a long inner state of war, hating people for
you or taken from you. This may manifest
as a list
you believe to be wrong with them, things they shouldn't have
ways they caused you
or others pain, defects in their character, and
soon.
Your
list
worked out people. Yet
can
I
may be
or that are
all life?"
it
may
good reasons
identify issues that
for
you not to
do need to be
socialize
more importantly, your most basic concern needs
release myself
true self?
accurate;
How can
I
from
this stance of
war
so
I
with those
to be,
"How
can reconnect with
reopen to the unlimited love that connects
my
me with
ENLIVENED EMOTION
One answer whenever you
is
to bring true self awareness
back into your
Opening your awareness
are upset.
139
life
to your true self
automatically brings back the unlimited love you have lost touch with.
Doing
add
this requires frequent use of
a
your intention.
more expanded awareness
You simply need
feelings,
means choosing
at the
even
if
moment. Remember that
they seem limiting to you.
to be creative about letting yourself extend
limitations of those feelings to the subtle, unlimited love of true
beyond the
and well-being
self.
Hatred off as
to
whatever uncomfortable (and
to
perhaps powerful) feelings you are having
you never have to stop your
It
is
a very
though there
Your heart
hmiting emotion, giving you the sense of being closed is
nothing that exists but that uncomfortable
feels closed,
and you are frustrated
the grip your hatred has on you. Even
someone back or "teaching them
feeling.
at not
being able to loosen
when you
think that hurting
a lesson" will
make you
feel better,
those
ideas appeal to you because unconsciously you assume that doing so will release
you from the misery of hatred.
(It
won't.)
When you feel stuck in hating, you can use the discomfort to remind yourself of your desire to bring greater light into that aspect of your personality.
You can pause for
this distress,
I
a
moment and affirm, "Even in the midst
choose to remember
my
of
true self and unlimited being.
I
open to the love that I am." Sometimes the hate will be so powerful that there does not seem to be room
for
and hate
any other
feeling.
You may
still
need to deal with your anger
in constructive, practical terms, yet your affirmation will be
laying the energetic circuitry for you to have a
more expanded, true
self
experience, too.
Even one second of affirmation has
whether you level
feel it in
deeper than
connection, there will
powerful
effect, regardless of
the moment. The greatest effect takes place at a
feeling.
hundred times over
a
So
if
you repeat your affirmation sincerely even
a period of days or still
At some point your inner
weeks without
be an accumulative circuitry will
will begin to notice a difference.
a
feeling the
effect of all those seconds.
become strong enough
that you
COMING HOME
140
Sooner or later you will notice that even in the midst of hating there
can
still
be the experience of true
begin to stay open to love even longer limit you;
it
self
and unconditional
when you
love.
You
Then hate
feel hate.
will
will
no
no longer separate you from love and expanded
will
awareness. Hate will no longer be a dangerous, destructive feeling that
must be avoided or denied;
which the
What
light of truth a glorious
more than one this ability;
to
new
it
will be just another
human
feeling
through
can shine and bring transformation.
breakthrough! At that point you will be able to hold
reality in
your consciousness
at a time.
Do not undervalue
the secret to expanding your consciousness and opening
it is
possibilities.
For this reason,
it is
a recurring
theme throughout
this book.
The ability
more than one reality
to hold
in your consciousness at the
same time
frees you from limitation.
Even when you simultaneously
feel
into the darkness. light grows.
feel
angry,
sad,
your unlimited
As you continue
Yet even
if
frustrated,
or hateful, you can
spirit. It is like a
to
ray of light shining
open to unlimited
spirit,
the ray of
the darkness of hate closes your heart and seems
power
bigger than that single ray of light, the ray of light has greater
because
it
When that
is
comes from true
self.
you are able to contain both the
an enlightening
state. It
light
and the dark together,
means that you no longer have
to choose
one experience over another. You do not have to choose love or hate,
blame
or forgiveness, sadness or joy, anger or openheartedness.
You
are
no
longer polarized; no particular feeling boxes you in and keeps you from the light of true
self.
You then have
experiences you came into this
life
access to the full range of
to embrace.
human
ENLIVENED EMOTION
1
4
35
Forgiveness
Forgiveness
is
the antidote for hate;
it is
the path back to true
The
self.
best suggestion for finding forgiveness in your heart for someone you hate is
to find forgiveness for yourself
hate,
no matter
how much it
first. If
is justified,
you are feeling resentment or
you are suffering and need
forgiveness. Self-forgiveness releases suffering
self-
and restores balance.
Frequently people do not want to focus on forgiving themselves
because they think think forgiveness
wrong.
It is
it
is
means they have
They
to admit guilt for something.
given only to someone
who
has done something
important to realize that people often need forgiveness even
when they have done nothing wrong.
Forgiving
is
giving forth compassion.
Rather than seeing forgiveness as blaming yourself or excusing
someone
wrongdoing, see
else for
where compassion
needed.
is
Then
it
it
as simply extending
becomes
compassion
easier to forgive everyone,
including yourself.
Even
you believe someone
if
that person (or
else
has wronged or hurt you, forgiving
coming to peace with the
situation)
extend a hand of true compassion to yourself first. face of everything this person has
loving compassion to myself.
I
"I
may be
easier
if
you
forgive myself. In the
done or has put me through,
forgive myself for the pain
I
extend
and anger I have
felt."
There
is
nothing wrong with your pain and anger, yet forgiving
yourself for feeling
it
may still be important.
accompanied by an automatic sense realize that
or
of guilt or shame, so
it
is
discomfort, you
may
feelings.
often
can help to
beneath your pain, anger, or hatred you may have hidden
shame about those
becoming
Intense pain or anger
guilt
Because that guilt or shame adds more
unconsciously avoid the whole set of feelings by
self-righteous: "Well, they
wronged me,
so they
COMING HOME
142
come and
deserve to have something bad happen to them." "He should
me first." "I would never do the kind of thing she did!"
apologize to
Whenever you are at war with someone else,
you are always at war withyourself,
The deep yourself.
your
When you
own
shame about your
guilt or
guilt or
are self-righteous
your war against
feelings is
with someone
else to avoid feeling
much
shame, you are fighting yourself as
fighting the other person. a dual battle
too.
becomes
all
you are
as
You have probably already discovered that such consuming and
self-destructive
— a war you can
never win. In the midst of this complex
how do you
create healing so
web
of intense
and
you can move on? Simply forgiving yourself
cuts through everything and returns you to a state of simplicity. "I forgive myself for feeling hurt.
hatred.
I
is
hatred.
I
I
forgive myself for anger
to give forth compassion,
comfortable with different wording:
midst of this pain.
I
empowerment and and
from the true heart of my being."
forgive myself for separating
Or, because forgiving
emotion,
difficult
"I
you may
feel
more
give myself compassion in the
give myself compassion in the midst of
my
anger or
give myself compassion for having been separated so easily from
my true self by what someone else said or did." Truly giving yourself compassion
you have been wronged or but
genuine,
glowing
softening, your battle rigid
— not
self-pity for
compassion
how
self-righteousness for
how
terrible the ordeal has been,
— softens
everything.
With
armor begins to melt; your war stance becomes
that less
because you are gaining a truer power. As you continue feeling
compassion
for yourself, the
happen gently and naturally
war stance as
will soften even more.
It
will
you are ready to move into your greater
strength.
So
hand
it is
of
a matter of extending,
compassion to
self.
myself in the midst of
moment,
I
want
to be
it.
"Yes,
from the midst of that position of war, a I
feel
the pain, and
Even though
open to
it
may
I
give compassion to
feel
impossible at this
my unlimited love of self. want to I
reclaim
ENLIVENED EMOTION
my
the love that streams through
being and unites
me with
all
143
other
beings in peace and truth."
Keep
in
mind
that
current experiences of hate carry a hidden
all
when you
registry of previous, formative experiences similarly devastating separation
that
is
truly only of the
from true
moment.
self.
felt
forced into
You never experience hate
All hate carries the
memory and burden
of unresolved outrage at having lost your conscious experience of true self in the past. So, a current conflict that brings
hatred
may be an
you to unbearable rage or
excellent opportunity to begin deeper healing of your
past.
When you
feel
you find yourself automatically in
a
war
stance from which
unable to release either yourself or the person you hate, pay close
attention.
You may
notice that your feelings of hate seem to go beyond
the current situation, trailing into your past so deeply that you no longer
have clear images or memories to go with the
compassion to yourself and your armor being separated from true
Perhaps even your
initial
self
feelings.
As you extend
softens, earlier experiences of
may come forward
be recognized.
to
experience of separation from true
self will
reveal itself for healing.
Remember that your hate need not closeyou down; it
can remindyou of compassion andgiveyou the opportunity to heal some powerful feelings.
Your way through the unbearable pain
more than anything, you want
of hating
to
know
that,
to regain your experience of true self
urdimited being. You want true
self
and
even more than you want revenge,
even more than you want your "enemies" to
finally see
or flawed they have been. Your desire for the divinity
is
how
unhmited
wrong, bad.
love, peace,
and
you truly are becomes most important. This alignment
priorities brings
you to
a position of
of
power; your energies are directed
with true purpose.
You may
find that your energy system
is
not quite strong enough to
hold that alignment of priorities for very long at a time. That's
all right.
COMING HOME
144
Frequency matters more than choose true
sustainability.
even for periods as brief as a few seconds, the more often
self,
your energy system adjusts and strengthens
becomes If
The more frequently you
Then, over time,
itself.
it
easier to maintain the true self experience for longer periods.
you have lived decades with
a habit of going into
you are threatened, your energy pattern being at war.
It
well developed to support your
may take time for your energy system to and
to the pattern of compassion
which could be yourself.
is
war posture when
forgiveness. In that period of transition,
days, weeks, months, or even years,
The time
it
restructure itself
be patient with
takes your system to restructure will ultimately
enable you to hold the experience of true
continuously in your daily
self
and unhmited being more
life.
Be aware that your personality may periodically object to
on forgiveness and reconnection with true
self.
The personality has been
conditioned to
self -righteousness or self-pity so it
other people be
made
to see
what they did wrong,
therefore,
worthy
it
is
may
insist that
still
or be punished, or be
shamed, or be made to apologize, and so on. There your personality;
this focus
no need to
is
silence
an expression of your consciousness and
of being heard.
your personality's greatest
skill is
But you
may want
to
not in bringing you
remember
Home
is,
that
to greater
truth and inner connection. Let's take a
moment
to bring the ego into this discussion. Ego
more commonly used term than
is
a
our purposes they are
personality, yet for
the same and can be used interchangeably.
Because of the various psychological and spiritual usages of the term ego,
you may tend to think
of
your ego as a problem, maybe a
centeredness or something you must overcome spiritual enlightenment. Let's not
ego
is
if
self-
you want to attain
frame ego that way. For our purposes,
simply the part of your mind that adapted long ago to losing your
connection to true
been responsible
self. It
for
became the leader
your survival in limited
in that state of loss
reality.
Everything your ego thinks and perceives separation and limitation. desires
To your
and has
is
in the
context of
ego, true self is not real. Therefore,
and actions that come from your ego never
fully take into
account
ENLIVENED EMOTION
that unity and unlimited love are possible. In short, your ego can
how to
tell
operate in a limited world without your connection to true
cannot show you
how
to reconnect. For that you
your ego and invite your true in the midst of hate
So you yourself.
is
of injuries
self; it
must extend beyond
the way. Forgiving yourself
begins primarily in your relationship with
yourself with the gifts of your
own
heart frees you
seems others have caused you. As you receive your
it
forgiveness, or compassion, forgiving others effect of your
you
a powerful invitation.
see, forgiveness
Empowering
show you
self to
145
happens naturally as
own
a side
own healing.
9 MEDITATION Forgiveness
1.
Close your eyes, and breathe easily and
each breath
Enjoy the 2.
fill
love,
you with
and allow it
When you
forgiving.
a feeling or
to
fully.
As you breathe,
image of love, even
if it is
let
7
very subtle.
grow within you.
whom you
have
difficulty
Imagine this person coming forward and facing you
at a safe
are ready, think of
distance. Let yourself feel
how
someone
uncomfortable
it feels
to hold feelings of
blame, hate, frustration, or resentment toward this person. 3.
As you
face this person,
make only
the following change in the
situation: Breathe love into yourself again. This love is not necessarily for
the other person:
It is
for you.
You
are being filled
the feeling of love, the thought of love. for yourself, 4.
"I
true self to suffering.
I
.
.
light of love,
Each breath gives you more love
even as you remain in the presence of the other person.
From
following:
.
with the
this presence
give love fill
with
love,
and compassion
me with
think or speak phrases like the to myself right now."
its light." "I forgive
allow myself to be healed by love."
myself for
"I
my
allow
my
pain and
COMING HOME
146
5.
Feel the
meaning
of your
words take
effect as
you think or speak
them. Stay with feelings of love, compassion, forgiveness, and healing for as long as
you
like.
Now imagine that the other person fades, disappears, or walks out of your image. When you are ready to come out of this meditation, 6.
.
.
.
your compassion for yourself comes with you into the world. As you open your eyes, the love and healing remain; they are truly within you now.
36
Anger Your exploration of love will matter
how many
some point bring you
to anger's door.
No
techniques you learn for loving yourself and others,
sooner or later you must learn to find your
at
make your peace with anger. Your challenge is to
way of receiving the glorious light
of life even
when you
are angry.
There
is
something
nothing wrong with being angry. Anger can inappropriate
perspective)
is
happening
or
threatening
in a situation
(from
your
alert
you that
personality's
and can mobilize your energy to
take constructive action. Yet because anger
is
usually expressed in
distorted and destructive ways, and because anger often activates the
personality and blocks awareness of the unconditionally loving
people
feel that
anger
Understand that
is
You can never be
is
spiritual
truly separate from spirit because
and serves
At the personality
you and everything
arc spirit. So, every experience, including
a high purpose.
level, it is
specific issues that trigger
up
thought and feeling you can have.
your body and every aspect of your personality.
about you, including anger, anger,
important for you to deal with the
your anger. Sometimes this will mean standing
for yourself in a conflict or a threatening situation.
may need
to assess
many
not a "spiritual" experience.
spirit is in every
Spirit is in every cell of
self,
whether your anger
is
Other times you
really related to the situation
ENLIVENED EMOTION
that triggered If
or
it
is
147
an old emotional pattern that no longer serves you.
you have trouble knowing
how
anger (or with your response to someone assistance from a wise
and
with your
to take appropriate action else's),
by
all
means
get
There are excellent books as
reliable source.
well as skilled therapists available to help you develop a healthy relationship with anger. ritual of
It is
worth pursuing and
is
honoring and clearing your personality so
part of the life-long it
can serve you on
your path of growth. For now,
leave the psychological aspects of anger as well as its
let's
appropriate expression. (These
may need to be explored in circumstances
that give you the ongoing support you need.) Instead, energetic aspect of anger and
let's
focus on the
how you can open to the vitality it carries.
The vitality of life force is within
all
emotion;
this vitality is your birthright
When you will find in
it
life. It all
allow yourself to have the vitality within your anger, you
easier to allow yourself to have everything else
comes down to allowing life force
Because
life
you to physical
force
is
to flow through you.
the basic energy flow of
reality, literally giving
you
you truly want
life
life, it is
what connects
and enabling you to be
present and active in the physical world. Holding back or stopping your life
force
would be
foolish, ludicrous!
flow of energy that gives you
vitality
existence? Yet,
when your
you do not
your anger through in
let
anger
is
works against you, separating you
Why would you
want
to stop the
and sustains your physical
denied, your vitality also
is
denied.
If
way,
it
a clean, open, life- affirming
energetically from the
world you came
here to embrace.
This does not angry. Vitality
is
mean that
to allow yourself vitality
experienced in
all
you must always be
emotions and states of being. You
have a wide repertoire! But by denying or withholding your anger you
deny yourself part of your basic connection with
life.
COMING HOME
148
If anger seems negative to you,
you arc probably thinking of distorted anger.
Anger
in its pure
form
is
not rageful, dangerous, or violent.
It is
pent up, misdirected, or discharged in emotional attack. Pure anger feeling that creates a conduit for energy
your system.
and flushes the
life
not is
a
force through
an extending energy, connecting people rather than
It is
separating them, prompting communication rather than isolation or
Pure anger can be as powerful as love or joy in opening your
conflict.
heart and healing your body, and restoring healthy connection between
you and
others.
Why, then, is anger so often experienced as negative and destructive?
We live in a culture where the personality perceives itself as separate from true
on the
heavily
extent
self
it
and unconditional well-being. To compensate, ability to
be
"in control"
and
it
relies
trusts emotions only to the
can remain in control of them. This need for control prevents us
from trusting emotions that convey life force powerfully and are harder to control.
Because the personality force, life
power
of
is
unaware that we
all
are truly one
force seems separate from us and bigger than life force,
whatever control
which we cannot
we may
control,
is
have established in
anger, that are naturally strong conductors of
we
with
are.
life
So the
perceived as a threat to life.
life
Emotions, such as
force are feared
and
generally are not well managed.
As
a culture
we
have worked so hard
at controlling anger that often
we mistake even the faintest feeling of anger — ours or other people's — for the need to have greater control, and we react at that level. So, either expressing our anger or facing other people's anger can easily turn into a
we try to
control others or to keep from being controlled by
battle
where
them.
We may fling our anger at people through a litany of complaints or
subtle manipulation in an attempt to control them, the situation, or our vulnerability
—instead of allowing our anger to show us how much we
want well-being and connection. Perhaps that
is
what you
do, or perhaps
you keep your anger bottled
ENLIVENED EMOTION
up
to ensure
you don't use
it
anger, that energy doesn't go away;
must go somewhere,
often
it
The energy
expression.
used
unconsciously
of
When you
destructively.
is
it's
an
alive,
149
resist or disallow
moving
force.
Because
it
rerouted into a less clear and less direct
disowned anger can be turned inward and
against
yourself.
Fatigue,
depression,
illness,
hopelessness, insecurity, and emotional defensiveness are
some
of the
possible results.
may have unknowingly adopted such
You
emotional pattern early in
a
self-destructive
Perhaps in your family no one tolerated
life.
being the recipient of your anger, so you learned not to express others. It
may have been
it
to
acceptable, however, for you to turn your anger
against yourself through self-criticism or self-hatred.
gotten the message that
if
you were angry
at
You may even have
someone, you actually
deserved to have something bad happen to you because of
it.
This
conditioning could have set the pattern for the energy of your anger to
come back to you in destructive ways. Considering the narrow range of options the culture natural that you
irony
is
may resist your
anger as well as the anger of others. The
that in the fight to maintain control, you have forgotten anger's
You have
real purpose!
forgotten that anger
and connection rather than forgotten that anger to
offers, it is
open more
a
of alienation
all
it
energy of communication
and opposition. You have
powerful feeling that triggers your energy system
fully to life force.
flow of life force as
what life is
is
is a
You have forgotten
that being open to the
streams through your body and opens you
to true self'is
about and is, therefore, more important than "winning" any
battle.
Asyou develop
the ability to receive the pure,
vital energy within anger,
you open
As the energy energy there
is.
to a powerful
of creation, vital
So in
its
life
new healing source.
force
is
the most profound healing
pure form, anger is a healing energy rather than a
destructive one. Because few people have learned to be open to and
COMING HOME
50
accepting of undistorted anger, few people realize the tremendous healing
power it
carries.
Exploring this element of anger requires that you hold a clear focus
and pay
You need
attention.
a strong, conscious
commitment
to self to
stay present and follow through on the progression of feelings and
experiences that will emerge. As you open to the pure vitality of anger,
many
life
in
you will find yourself beginning to open to pure experience
at
other levels as well. Vitality links you to true
self,
and the
effects of
that connection are always far-reaching.
A
primary step in opening to the
when you
are angry,
up
anger
you have tremendous energy
you have choice about yourself
vitality of
how you
direct
it.
to notice that
your disposal and
at
You can use
is
that energy to
dam
deaden yourself, hold yourself back, think abusive
inside,
thoughts about yourself, or send
it
out toward other people in similarly
destructive ways. Or, you can receive the gift of vitality that comes with that emotion
and be enlivened by
enriching your
Anger
is
life
it.
That
vitality
then nourishes you,
and your relationships with other people.
an emotion and a physiological response in the body.
Whether you use the emotion in
a destructive
directly affects the chemistry of your body,
way or a life-affirming way
which
in turn enhances or
diminishes your physical, mental, emotional, and energetic well-being.
Your choice
makes
all
in interpreting
the difference.
If
and directing the energy
this choice is not
made
of anger
consciously,
it
is
happens
unconsciously from your long held patterns of habit. Whichever occurs,
what
way
it
your choice determines whether you move into increased
experiences of vibrant
Me or into depletion.
Underneath anger is usually a feeling of helplessness.
Even
may
if
you are not consciously in touch with
it,
that helplessness
cause you to overlook the true power you always have in anger: the
power power.
to choose
Few
life.
You probably
are not trained to recognize such
parents say to their angry children, "You are angry.
strong feeling, and
I
want you
to notice
how much power you
It's
have.
a
You
ENLIVENED EMOTION
have a choice to use this power in that?
What would
you."
If
a life-affirming
be a good way? Talk to
you did not get
this support
from
me
way.
about
a parent,
How can you and
it,
5
1
do
will help
I
you can learn to give
it
to yourself.
When
you
become present with
yourself. Consciously notice that, in spite of
distressing emotion that at a point of
when you
may seem to have
pattern.
Watch
yourself,
"Do
of
you are
you may discover some resistance to
are angry.
a life of its
Your habituated reaction to
own and may be difficult to
may
your resistance.
want
I
do
for
I
be attached to the
also
want
to go to
It is
may
be,
familiarity of
your
old:
natural. Notice
with the resistance
make
a
stop, even
it
moment. As impractical and uncomfortable
unconsciously you
pattern, or
circulating through your system,
this thought,
claiming your power
for just a
may be
any
power. You have the power of choice.
As you focus on
anger
stop briefly and take a few deep breaths to
feel angry,
this time
as
it
and then ask
and keep the old
change and remember that
I
am at
a point
power here?" Of course, the power
is
not power over the person or situation that
the focus for your upset feelings.
It is
the
power
is
of being able to choose
how much affirmation of life you will carry in your body.
That
is far
more
important than any issue you are likely to be angry about.
Because the cultural patterning of anger is so strong, it is
easy to get stuck arguing the issues
and trying to gain and maintain
control.
Imagine, for example, that you are in an argument with someone and
your temper
flares.
You
are
your anger to intimidate,
tempted to
fall
into your old pattern of using
belittle, or find fault
with your adversary to win
the argument and, therefore, avoid the feeling of being defeated yourself.
Or perhaps your tendency
make
is
to pretend you are not angry, to sulk, or to
the other person feel guilty so they will retreat. In these cases, the
pure energy of your anger of vitality. In this
is
misdirected,
compromised
state,
which
you have
short-circuits your flow literally forgotten
your
152
COMING HOME
source of true well-being, and this control in an argument
is
worth the cost
a very real loss to you. Is gaining
of diminished vitality to your
own
system?
Learning to give anger giving
up
through
expression,
which includes
control over others, allows the pure vitality of anger to stream
all levels
your body. This in example,
its natural, direct
if
of your being, nourishing
and
revitalizing every cell in
one definition of "winning" in an argument. For
itself is
the other person's opinion or decision prevails, you can have
the personal victory of walking
away with
vibrant
life
that
not
is
dependent on the outcome of the argument.
mean you must always make an
either/or
choice between inner, personal victory and outer effectiveness.
You need
This certainly does not
not retreat or be passive in a conflict to maintain your energetic integrity. In fact, staying
and
open to
force can increase your ability to
life
empowered within
yourself,
to
communicate with the strength or passion you
What you may
new
Learning
it
ground,
and
to
feel.
need to do, however,
misdirection of anger as options.
your
hold
be centered
is
start
your
noticing
happens and then give yourself some new
techniques
for
healthy
and
containment
expression of anger can help tremendously. Also, choosing vitality often in your
life
and becoming familiar with what
it
feels like in a variety of
situations can establish a recognizable base of well-being,
return to
which you can
when you become angry.
The bottom you the outer
line is that
results
sometimes your expression of anger will get
you want and sometimes
it
will not. Yet,
experience has one basic purpose: to bathe you with unlimited
you accept receiving
this
life
truth,
force
revitalizing yourself
becomes your highest
by being
priority.
life.
fully
all
When
open to
You can then choose
your response to every situation based on what would enhance your flow of true vitality
As you
and well-being rather than diminish it.
live
with
dealing with anger behavior.
You
this clear, aligned intention, other people's
may become
are unplugging
less relevant as
models
for
ways
your
of
own
from the culturally held consciousness
about anger. While the cultural beliefs
still
include the unconscious
ENLIVENED EMOTION
assumption that anger equals an inner use anger as a vehicle for vibrant
153
you are beginning to
loss or death,
life.
At the moment when
they are at a point ofpower,
most people have no idea of the magnificent choice they face.
Given conscious choice, most people would choose increased vibrancy; yet relatively there.
Without
tend to
let
few actually realize that
know
life force.
the difference between being
even subtle restriction of the
depletion.
Some people
life
life
force
react to anger as though
reaction to anger that
is
recognized as threatens their life
force in
own
as well as other people's,
fear.
Unplugging from
If
life
the true threat. Without understanding this
dynamic, people respond to anger, their
your
enhanced or
is it
and people
The body and
flow of
survival. Ironically, it is the act of restricting their
with
can take them
a greater awareness, cultural habit prevails
anger restrict their flow of vibrant
energy system deprived;
their anger
life;
again
it is
that happens,
it
this cultural pattern
means
natural that your personality
may
a
profound change in
may
display resistance.
help to stop, take a deep breath, and then briefly
lend a compassionate ear to the resistance. Hear what the voice of resistance has to say,
and take notes
for
it.
Write
few words, perhaps
a
even two or three sentences, to capture the message. This allows the resistance to be expressed If
and then released onto paper.
the resistance returns, gently repeat the procedure as needed.
Important information about your inner process and your personality's needs
may be
revealed to you in this way. By expressing, hearing, and
releasing the resistance, you are redirecting its flow. in a closed circuit, keeping
you stuck.
and then pass through, leaving you
Remember,
resistance to
free to
than you have had in the past. protect you.
no longer operates
make new choices.
empowering change comes from the aspect
of the personality that does not yet
tries to
It is
It
being trained to inform you
It
know you
can have more fulfillment
operates from habit and limitation and
COMING HOME
154
As a creation ofyour unlimited spirit, your personality worthy of being loved and honored;
is
you just don't have to believe it as you once did.
Honor your
personality by hearing
its
concerns; then take another
deep breath and go back to your point of power. Feel your anger and consider your choice consciously.
When
I
can choose to
you are
may sometimes
may
still
a powerful energy
me or shut me down. Vibrant life or slow depletion. Which do I choose?"
through me. deadness.
feel
"I
let it
enliven
Vitality or
at this point of considering aliveness or depletion, it
feel
impossible to choose aliveness. The old conditioning
be too strong. Your inner
of personal failure
moving
on your
part. It
may
self-critic
may
interpret this as a sign
say that you are a
weak
person,
that you are not enlightened enough, that you do not deserve to feel good,
or something equally deflating.
The content
of these critical messages is
What is more
usually not true and does not matter anyway.
evaluating your self-worth
when you
simply being honest with yourself about
are choosing aliveness
When
still
could have
and when you
you choose depletion, you
are simply doing
you can
is
what you
are doing.
You can
which choice you
still
is
You
accept yourself. In
fact,
bad
with conscious awareness
making while giving yourself acceptance, support,
and love in that moment is
The good news
choice.
a
though you may wish you
a different choice. Noticing
are
are choosing depletion.
making
are not
full-heartedly love yourself, even
made
helpful than
in itself significant
that you are
all
empowerment.
right regardless of the choice
you
make. There are no good choices or bad choices in life. There are ones that bring you into empowering experience of vital
diminish that experience, but there
is
life
force
and choices that
no good and bad. All the choices
you make are done with unlimited blessing from unlimited beings. And all
those choices, absolute love and
truly are, regardless of
life
force are
what you experience
still
in the
the core of
in
who you
moment when you
take your action.
There
is
restricts the
nothing wrong with you flow of
vitality
when you make
through your being. In
fact,
a choice that
giving yourself
ENLIVENED EMOTION
155
acceptance and love in that situation nourishes your system and lays circuitry that will enable
you to make
next time, or the next, or the next.
life-affirming decision the
you catch yourself being unable to
new, life- affirming way, then breathe, remember the
direct your anger in a
love that you are,
If
more
a
new
and pat yourself on the back
for being
an excellent
human being who is pursuing the exploration of limitation. If
you believe that anger
yourself to open to
it,
destructive,
is
it
may be
know
even though you
difficult to
allow
that anger carries vital
healing force. Be very patient, gentle, and loving with yourself and take
the process slowly.
you are
If
overwhelmed, or have
at risk of being
new
reason to fear your patterns of anger, or need
input to develop
healthy expressions for this powerful emotion, support yourself by getting qualified outside help.
Anger it is
is
not always comfortable, but
allowed to move through as the
weapon. Anger can be through freely
When close
you
that feeds
is
not
far
more comfortable when
vitality of life rather
something negative or dangerous. Anger yourself or others, but that
it is
is
its real
a healing force
dangerous
purpose.
when
its
if
you use
it
against
not meant to be a
It is
energy
than resisted as
is
allowed to flow
— and even gently— as a way to connect you with Source.
you can allow yourself to
off to yourself or others,
and nurtures you, you
to the vitality of
life
feel
anger in a
way
that does not
but instead opens you to the
will not fear anger so
in your physical body.
of your spirit into physical experience,
which
You is
force
much. In opening
within anger, you are opening to true
becoming more present
life
self
while
are bringing the truth
the essential purpose of
your journey into form.
ATTUNEMENT Staying
You
are setting
new
patterns,
Aware in Anger
which require
repetition.
New
experience
has to be real to the body before the automatic emotional responses can
COMING HOME
156
genuinely change. During the time of repatterning, staying conscious and
witnessing your choices will help.
through the following
When
anger surfaces, you can go
steps:
1.
Feel the vibrant energy.
2.
Recognize that you are
3.
Notice that you have a choice to enhance or restrict your flow of
at a point of
power.
life force.
Become
4.
clear
on what constructive action will best support your
well-being and vibrant aliveness. 5.
Stay aware as you take whatever constructive action you choose.
6.
Give yourself acceptance and notice
how it feels.
9 MEDITATION Healing Through Anger
The following meditation can
give
of energetic response to anger.
increments of perhaps is
best to choose times
anger, so far into
in
you practice in
are not feeling strong or
anger that you lose control.
(Note:
If
It
overwhelming
You need
to be able to guide yourself
gently. Consider having
someone it
else
with you to
yourself.
while doing this visualization you sense that your feelings of
may become
too uncomfortable or intense, simply stop.
eyes, breathe gently
go.
in small
minutes every few days or weeks.
support or guide you until you're comfortable doing
love.
it
you have some range within which to maneuver. Do not move so
and out of the anger
anger
your patterns
You can experiment with
five to fifteen
when you
shifting
and
easily for a
few moments, and bathe yourself
Give yourself compassion for having gone as
Honor your
that balances
limits
and do not push
and nourishes
Open your
you., or talk
far as
yourself.
with
a
in
you were ready to
Move
into an activity
support person.)
ENLIVENED EMOTION
1.
when you were
Begin by imagining a situation
remember
a real-life situation, or
few moments
yourself a
some
overwhelm you, but just enough 2.
to
makes you angry
to flow through your
the anger. Vitality
the
medium
vitality
3.
for
it.
is
remember how anger feels....
feel
is
not to change the
is
mind
simply to allow the vitality of
body and your energy system along with is
just
Gently allow your energy system to open so you....
the anger, yet you don't have to put
words. You don't have to interact
now
the main experience, and the anger
streams through
You can
— not enough to
or to change anyone else's
or actions. Instead, your purpose life
situation form in your
of the anger
Also imagine that your purpose right situation that
You may
you may make one up. Give
to let the
imagination.... Let yourself feel
angry.
157
with anyone. In
fight.
this
You
it
into action or
don't have to convince or
moment, you
are simply in that
situation to experience the nurturing flow of vitality that anger carries.
4.
There
is
plenty of space for the vitality to
system. This energy, or
As
flows,
it
brings
life
it
feeds
life force,
move through your
has a natural
and nourishes every
wisdom of its own.
cell in
your body.
and radiance into your being. Absorb and accept
It
this
healing force. 5.
Now imagine that the angry situation you were facing disappears into light. All stress disappears with
enough to cleanse you frustration, vitality
6.
of
it.
The
any residue
or discomfort, leaving you
light lingers long
of
anger,
washed with
conflict,
radiant
and well-being.
When you are ready to come out of your meditative state, breathe fully
and become aware of your body. Then slowly open your
eyes, stretch
and move, and get up when you are ready.
9
COMING HOME
58
ATTUNEMENT Healing Through Anger: Short Version After you feel familiar with the meditation and are comfortable
guiding yourself through
open consciously to
the next step
is
to
process while you are already feeling anger.
It
can be done in a minute or
two
it,
— or even a few breaths.
easily
manageable
this
Start in a situation involving a very low,
As you
level of anger.
are successful,
you can slowly
work up to more challenging situations. If
you find that
or balances
more
it,
effective
this exercise increases
your anger rather than soothes
stop the exercise and turn to a self-soothing process that
and constructive
for you.
To
is
practice using the vitality in
anger in a healing way, the anger cannot be so strong as to overwhelm you.
1.
Pause for
a
moment and
take a few deep, easy breaths.
With
those breaths turn your awareness to the gentle vitality in anger.
2.
Allow the vitality to flow through your system in way.
It
does not escalate your anger, but soothes or balances
Let yourself feel this positive
and nourishing your 3.
4.
a natural, gentle
cells
life
force flowing through your
body
and tissues.
Know that you are experiencing a healing energy you how to constructive deal with the situation. As you
it.
that can
show
close this exercise, take three gentle breaths while
imagining that the love that you are
is
radiating through you.
ENLIVENED EMOTION
59
1
CLARK Clark swaggered into
my
shouldered, and muscular in a
Clean
good looking, and confident, he was
cut,
him chopping wood. His
picture
We
He was thirty-something, tall, broad way that says, "Yeah, I work out. A lot."
office.
a guy's guy;
face looked open, like
and shook hands, but
said our Hello's, smiled,
the visceral wake-up
when
I
wasn't
fear, just
matter
how convincing this individual's persona looks,
I
get
it
had no
was on
could
I
secrets. alert. It
"No
instinct tells me, there's
something
different underneath."
As our session girlfriend, a client of
started Clark told
mine, thought
it
me
he was there because
his
might help their relationship. She
thought he had problems with emotional intimacy.
He went on
to say
He didn't know why, but whenever he started to get close woman he would pull away. He really loved this girlfriend and felt
that he agreed. to a
drawn
to build a future
would
get confused and then say or do things that created distance
with
her,
but whenever he thought about
between them. He wondered if he ever was going
down and became
he didn't think he had any
he
to be capable of settling
enjoying a committed relationship. As
clear that
it
asked questions
I
fears; his
only problem
it
was
that this mystifying dynamic kept occurring.
Our conversation turned easily
to his
work
as a police officer.
He
talked
about the challenges of the job and his commitment to serving his
community. officers,
He went on
to tell
me
about his camaraderie with his fellow
the importance of keeping emotions in check, and the necessity
of reacting to situations according to procedure.
As he described some
the dangerous situations he took in stride daily, pretty scary." "No," he replied,
"I
I
said,
of
"That sounds
don't really feel scared."
When we talked about how violent and irrational some of the people he had arrested had been, his easy going manner disappeared, and tone quickly became reproachful. These were deserved whatever punishment they got,
wondered. Yes, pretty much, he was
terrible,
was his
certain.
awful people
his
who
opinion. "All of them?"
I
COMING HOME
60
He began a
story he
was
sure
would convince me.
night, seven or eight years previously,
Soon into the
street.
(that he
was
Clark couldn't find words bad enough
story,
willing to say in front of
was the worst
of the worst,
he and his partner had been trying
man who had been threatening people
to arrest an out-of-control, violent
on the
In the middle of the
scum
me)
to describe the man. "This guy
of the earth. People like
him
are hardly
human," was his sentiment.
"We were He was
hold.
trying to cuff him, but he
He
high on something.
was too
felt
no
and
violent to catch
pain,
and there was no
reasoning with him." Clark paused to inhale. "That son-of-a-bitch had a knife.
My partner turned away for a split second, just a split second, to open
the car door, and that #*+&*!! charged at him."
Words poured all
happened too
him.
I
had no
out of him now.
fast.
choice.
I
"My
partner didn't have a chance,
The guy was going
to stab him; he
HAD to save my partner!
I
was going
pulled the trigger.
He went down instantly." crumbled. He stared at me dumbfounded
to I
it
kill
shot
that slimy, no-good #*+&*!! Clark's
continued, sidewalk.
while
face
shot
"I'd
We
him
in the stomach,
called for an
and
his
blood was
all
he
as
over the
ambulance and tried to stop the bleeding
we waited, but" — sobs were
starting to break free
—
"it
was no
use,
that bastard died within minutes." Clark's face
was
in his
hands
now as
the weight he had been carrying
pressed on him. Sobs shook his shoulders, freeing the grief and torment
he had kept strapped
and make him feel. "I
down
I still
eyes wide. "Underneath, he I
those years so
it
was
didn't still
want
to kill him." His face lifted,
a person.
wanted to be someone who helped, not
hiding and no holding
down
I
killed a person.
anything to keep
it still
with mine as tears and words flowed.
and
A
real
killed."
now in a free release of tears. back. No keeping the feelings at
His grief gushed out
strapping
wouldn't reach his heart
When the flood of feelings came, Clark didn't resist.
hated that guy, but
person!
all
There was no bay.
silent. Clark's
No more
eyes stayed
ENLIVENED EMOTION
"I
had to protect
wanted
my partner, but I didn't want to kill anybody.
to kill anybody."
As Clark talked
shoulders dropped, bravado
mystified, not quite sure "Is
never
I
softened, his
asked.
I
He nodded, but seemed
how he had gotten there. what
possible that after you shot that man, and he died,
it
disturbed you most
6
was gone.
possible you're feeling grief?"
"Is it
body
on, his
1
was not how
horrible a person he
had been, but how
horrible your grief felt?" "Yes..."
no
Clark's
words emerged
idea. Grief for that
"And
surprise,
man,
for the life
grief for myself.
been broken ever
slowly, his voice low,
I
lost
his heart.
self,
nurturing that
had no
He looked
at
idea,
me with
My heart has
since." let his
When he nodded he was there,
into his true
lost."
something that night.
asked Clark to close his eyes and
I
he
"I
I
awareness settle gently in
continued guiding him deeper,
into that aspect of his being that
it is
is
so all-loving
and
all-
not afraid of broken hearts, or shootings, or grief that
feels
too big. Clark breathed into his true
that
had waited
at the outskirts of
years to be signaled that
it
was
and tears mingled. Then peace
safe
and
self
sighed. Big sighs, sighs
anger and judgment seven or eight
now and
they were welcome. Sighs
settled in.
When Clark opened his eyes, he looked at me with calm. The current of
emotion had carried him Home, to true
of comfort
and compassion, to gentle
shores.
Clark talked more about the incident, little
encouragement he had gotten
self,
how
it
to his ever present source
With new had
at his job to
self-compassion,
affected him,
and how
T
show his pain. Noticeably
absent from the rest of our conversation was any more judgment or disgust about the difficult and dangerous "bad guys" so plentiful in his
work.
It
wasn't necessary anymore.
No wonder his girlfriend;
To keep
Clark had had trouble being emotionally intimate with
he had put up a barrier to emotional intimacy with himself.
his grief at
bay he had had to keep himself out of
His source of deepest
love, vulnerability,
his
own heart.
and connection to people,
to
all
people— girlfriends and bad guys and everyone in between—had been
off
162
COMING HOME
limits.
He had kept
to the outer periphery of that barrier, where, like at
the edge of a solar system, conditions that nourish
humans
are absent.
We often forget that our primary, human relationship is not with our romantic partner;
with our
it's
self.
The more intimately present we
are
we can be with others. Connecting intimacy we can have. Emotion, even anger
with ourselves, the more intimate with true
self is
the deepest
and judgment, can take us
there.
Expressing our emotions in a safe environment
—whether
telling
our
story to a caring, compassionate person, writing in our journal, or simply
speaking out loud kindly to ourselves true self all
us.
our
that
is
feelings, all
True
hearts,
if
self is
and the
where we want to our
stories, all
when we're
go.
True
alone
self is
our fears that
life
— can carry us to
big enough to cradle
might be too much for
the source of the love and compassion
safety
we need to live there.
we
have in our
Part VII
9
MY STORY CONTINUES Painting
37
Breakthrough
In 1999
was struck by
I
sudden and
a
Certain for the previous 30 years that
be one because school art class, art
I
consuming desire to
was not
paint.
and could never
a painter
way we had been taught in high I was intimidated by my new desire. Just walking into an I
couldn't paint the
supply store made
could see that
I
all
me
sweat.
had never held
was
I
a canvas,
sure the people working there
was
in
awe
of the
word "palette",
how to squirt paint from a tube. I felt marked as an someone who didn't belong in the world of art.
and didn't even know outsider,
Scared as
I
was,
I
took a three-day, outdoor painting workshop. The
only novice in the group,
I
was mostly ignored while
helped her more advanced students.
hour or two to get her help, so
by myself turned out
experimented
To my I
to be a blessing because
was no
composition, there
I
got stuck
stopped asking. Being
such things
about
instruction
I
When
as
"right"
it
way
had to
left
was my
perspective,
I
the instructor to wait an
flail
flailing.
around
Without
shadow, and
light,
of painting to limit me,
and
I
freely.
surprise
I
fell
profoundly in love with the acrylic paint (which
was able to squeeze from the tube after
The blobs
all!).
of thick,
wet
my palette, momentarily still before swooshing across the universe of my canvas, colliding and combining into creations wouldn't have known how to plan. Applying the paint was colors
were
like little
worlds on
I
luscious, sensuous,
and exciting
in a
way that I had never known creative
expression could be. Ecstasy happened on the third day. As
through fire.
my body with
Oddly,
I
release
I
didn't mind;
some
had
painted, joy streamed
such intensity that the bottoms of it
was
two, the buildup of vibrancy in contain, so
I
a glorious
of the energy.
on
kind of pain. But every hour or
my body became
to stop painting
my feet felt
too uncomfortable to
and jump up and down
a
few times
to
166
COMING HOME
38 Integrating
After the workshop,
Immersed
My
I
turned
my
in painting every day,
true
and
coaching
self
I
bedroom
extra
thought of and talked about
which
classes,
continued, but other practicalities of
life
importance. Errands went undone, and
I
with a weak promise to Yet one errand
I
The very
supplies.
revisit
into a painting studio.
them
I
loved unwaveringly,
seemed
distant, of
minimal
stuffed bills into a desk drawer
"later."
performed enthusiastically was buying art
little else.
my painting
make me sweat and
store that used to
feel
now made me as happy as a toy store does a child. Now I felt at home there. It was my "Cheers" — I was a regular, and everybody greeted me by name. The owner, Mike, liked to tease me as we carried armloads of canvases to my car and then went back for the bags of paint, inadequate
"Next time, just back a truck up to the door!" After five realize that
I
months
I
notices for bills
me,
I
immersion in creative
had spent $3,000
with materials
for
of
felt like
my
to create
voraciously used, and that still
I
I
surfaced enough to
studio and keep
was
it
stocked
getting second Overdue
waiting in the drawer. Wonderful as painting was
an addict with a habit
couldn't afford.
I
Giving up painting was inconceivable, so
my work.
bliss,
Having no idea
how
did that,
artists
paintings into the car and took
it
them
I
was time packed
to start selling
17 of
my biggest
to an art gallery in town.
owners, Deanna and Dayla, were kind and gracious
The two
women who
gently
explained that artists usually submit photos rather than hauling in their goods, but they chose five paintings they thought might
which gave me the confidence elsewhere.
My work continued to
my beloved art supplies. From my state of painting 1)
Every painting or
thinks of
it, is
to sell,
a love letter
submit paintings
from true
Two did sell,
(via
photos!)
here and there, enough to pay for
abandon,
artistic creation,
sell.
I
developed a three-part theory.
no matter what the personality
self.
2) Surrounding ourselves
with
our creations imprints the loving messages into our subconscious mind.
MY STORY CONTINUES
enough imprints, the loving messages emerge into our
After
3)
personality's conscious awareness,
where they become integrated
our perception of ourselves, others, and
hung
my
all
167
paintings where
I
would
With
Life.
see
into
that theory in mind,
them and
I
get imprinted every
day.
One
months
night, nine
basking in the paintings
floor
True
walls.
slowed;
same
it
became
a joy to breathe.
was
feel a
I
much
is
feeling so
self
my
spoke.
my
weekly meetings in
later, in early
studio.
It
body, making
it
me
I
quietly It
simply became
so balanced that
heard clearly in
I
I
Three months
covered the
it
dawned
day."
w ay do when I'm doing true self channeling, for women with cancer." did.
room
breath deepened and
necessary);
r
I
living
We all need this. We're supposed 7
my true
my
could be happy, mine were.
was
chemotherapy ever}
The next moment,
on
relaxed and energized at the
felt
good and
natural chemotherapy.
to have this natural
sat
— and more so minute by minute.
(no jumping
more balanced. Soon I was
My
me.
If cells
and balanced
alive,
never became too
on me, "This
balance!
fill
chemical change occurring in
happy, relaxed,
I
— or loving messages — that
well-being began to
self
time. Balance.. it
could
workshop,
after the
my mind,
the
"Start a free painting group
2000, the
first
group began
its
was attended by wonderful women
turning to the healing power of creativity to face the challenge of a lifetime.
Although
sounding,
I
used
I
my
didn't talk about true self or
do channeling or
true self perspective and techniques to help the
women open to their true
self creativity
and
effortlessly find their natural
styles of painting.
Their paintings came flying out of them, released at last from the confines of "I'm not an
artist." Fears, struggles, pain,
well as loves, dreams, joys, and camaraderie It
was
all
beauty to me.
We
painting. Ever}7 painting,
tempted to judge
it,
adopted what
no matter
was fabulous
how
Some
of the
women with
— shone from their paintings. I
called the Fabulous! style of
the painter's
to the group
expression of something that had wanted to
and loneliness— as
mind might be
and celebrated
come out and be
as a perfect seen.
advanced cancer began to report, "The only
COMING HOME
68
time in
my week
I'm not in pain
and
is
when
I'm here painting."
was tapping the
that the group's creativity
true self well-being that
is
present in
all
years,
went by
and creative expression that
new
group grew, and
then
unconditional, unwavering,
of us at a level deeper than pain
as
filled
we
thrived in the flow of vibrant
the studio.
two public
sculptures.
felt
I
I
knew
it,
I
was
including the creation of
art,
organized the painting groups and art exhibits
I
into Arts for Healing, a nonprofit project sponsored
At the time of this writing
in 2010,
1
Healing (www.ArtsforHealing.com)
work
life
lucky to be there. The
groups were added. Before
coordinating exhibits of cancer survivors'
self
knew
suffering.
Months, then
for
I
still
by
a local hospital.
lead painting groups for Arts
— and
I
joyfully continue
teaching classes and doing private coaching. True
my true self is a
me in multiple directions.
fountain of inspiration that carries
39
What Happened From my first urge
my
direction
to paint, true self
now
year from
in early 1999,
helm taking me in
"A few months from
wouldn't have believed them.
I
at the
personality never could have predicted or designed.
someone had said to me painting,"
had been
you'll
be
If
a If
now you'll be
they had gone on to say, "A
your paintings, teaching painting in
selling
cancer support groups, and founding a nonprofit project to share the healing
power
that time activities
became
I
of art,"
I
would have thought them downright
did not think
would have even
a treasure
I
I
had the
ability to paint,
and none
interested me. Yet as each of
loved with
all
batty.
At
of those
them unfolded,
it
my heart, enriching my life more than I
ever could have imagined.
How did all that happen? I
1984,
had been nurturing
my personality's connection with true self since
which fast-tracked the development
known were
in
those years,
my
me and
of gifts
and
skills
I
hadn't
brought them to the surface. Also, throughout
ongoing true
self
channeling for clients fine-tuned
my
MY STORY CONTINUES
1
69
my own life — the subtle nudges and as well as the stronger messages — which helped me to recognize my next ability to follow true self
As always, true
steps as they appeared. offered
it
to me.
To my
I
guidance in
self
saw the bigger picture and
moved into it as I was ready.
surprise, the bigger picture included painting.
While I painted
my studio, I used my techniques for opening to true self, which took me straight to my creative core, softened my inner critic, flowed love through me while I was painting, and freed me. Like a luscious first lover, painting opened me to creative passion and carried me into territory once forbidden. As we do with first loves, in
I
assumed
I
would remain
in that relationship,
matured over the years,
forever. Yet, as the relationship
for
my
with
painting quieted and tapered
off,
and
I
fell
its full intensity, it
changed. Fervor
increasingly in love
with
facilitating other people's creative unfolding in the painting groups.
As
painted
I
my
less,
strong and engaged.
was
creativity did not lessen, however. It
discovered that
I
remained
my creativity was not in painting, it
in me. I
learned that creativity
source from which to in a painting group,
live.
not just a force to be expressed, but a
My creativity engages every time
do true
myself, negotiate a tense
is
self
channeling for a client or
moment
dinner, or simply navigate the
in every
moment.
When we
creativity, a quality
we
the material
Creativity
is
Creativity
itself.
of
self,
notice
class,
we
is
sound
infusing the it,
we
9
of.
cook
body and personality
usually think of
the creator of
are made
for
my day.
have and use. Yet our creativity
unhmited, intelligent force that
help people
in a conversation or relationship,
rhythm
Creativity emanates from true
I
all
is
things and
it
as our
the same all
beings.
We do not have creativity, we are
COMING HOME
170
LETTY PANG Letty applied paint
make her
by the
She had long ago stopped trying to
fistfuls.
paintings look like recognizable objects, people, or landscapes.
She painted the interiors of
herself,
knowing that she
didn't
conform to
any predictable images.
With hands
from her palette or asked
of acrylic paint reds,
protected by thin, latex gloves, Letty scooped big globs
and yellows
me
to squirt tubes of purples,
hour or more she
directly onto her palms. For an
pressed paint onto her three- or four-foot-tall canvas, silent except for the occasional
call,
"More
paint, please!" Chatter
among
other
women in
the
cancer support, painting group seemed to glide in an arc around her,
was
never entering or disturbing the globe of creative focus that temporarily her world. In that world, Letty
was
in a state of abandon.
day, confined to the tiny, careful, in people's
No
group.
for Letty.
A dental hygienist by
and regimented tasks she accomplished
mouths, Letty became a painting superhero once a week in our stroke
was too
bold,
Her super power was
Each week Letty would
no canvas too
no emotion too deep
Expressing Herself Without Holding Back.
arrive
almost didn't come," and then
tall,
fall
exhausted from work, "I'm so tired
into a state of creative reverie that
I
was
boundless. As she carried her completed painting out the door at the end of the evening, she'd say,
Whenever words
I've
I
"I
knew I'd feel better if I came. I always do."
asked Letty what her painting state
felt like,
heard other people choose to describe their most profound,
spiritual experiences:
"Freedom, total freedom." "No
effort."
"Fun." "I'm not thinking, I'm just experiencing." "Exploring." doing,
it's
she used
a happening."
space inside me." "Everything
is
"I
"A bigger part of
feel all potentials
me comes
happening
"Happy." "It's
not a
out." "There's big
at once." "Beauty."
okay."
Breast cancer and a mastectomy had brought Letty to the painting
group. She had
come
thinking,
hadn't finished the sentence: she did
it
"I
"I
can't paint," only to find out she simply
can't paint anyone's
her way, not only could Letty paint, she
way but my own"
was
set free.
When
Part VIII
9
LIVING THE SPLIT Redefining Destiny
40 Heeding the Call True
self is calling to
of true self
Sometimes bliss.
is
we
us from every
our bodies. Becoming conscious
cell in
the destiny pulling each of us along our feel
the pull and follow
Other times there
is
it
easily
and
life's
naturally.
path.
That
is
surprising effort and the pain of bruised shins
we bump into obstacles in our way. Then there are the occasions when our path seems so thoroughly blocked that we feel stuck; and we fear as
we'll never get past that point.
The
obstacles in our paths are creations of our limited beliefs and
expectations of reality. As they spring out and take form in our
lives,
they
we continue believing that these obstacles are real, and unrelated to us, we struggle with them. We try to resist, deny, overcome, or find a way around them, and we may even seem get in our
to
way and seem to thwart us.
succeed temporarily.
persistent,
we
Yet,
and they pop up
If
limited
beliefs
as obstacles over
and expectations are
and over
again.
hold Hmitations in our identity and our expectations of
As long
we
life,
as
will
encounter them in our paths.
But take
heart.
Remember
that unlimited spirit
may seem
like they are there to
thwart you, they are not. They
are markers placed at points of potential
signs saying, "Pause here, shifting
and make
at the core of
and expectations. Although the
everything, including your limited beliefs
obstacles
is
a shift."
power
for you.
They
are like
You can claim your power by
your awareness and recognizing something greater than the
limitation that seems to be getting in your way.
Something
greater, in this case, is choice.
You have
choice.
You can
choose to continue in your previous habituated pattern based on the personality's
hmitation,
unhmitedness of true
or
self to create
process rather than an outcome life
can
you
—
choose
to
surrender
to
your path anew. Your destiny
the is
a
a matter of following the vibrancy of
force rather than being in the right place at the right time doing the
right thing. This is a destiny that has
dependent on
no particular form and
specific events or situations for its expression.
is
not
COMING HOME
74
There
no fixed
is
map with a setpathyou are
make your life worthwhile.
to follow to
There are no concrete ways to measure such things as success or failure.
Destiny
about the "proper" unfolding of your
is less
and more
life
about the innate unfolding of your being. As your being unfolds and you
open to unlimitedness, your
life
impulse to follow destiny's
call will surface in
sooner or later and Yet,
and reshaped. In
will be touched
may prompt you
want
to
to
fact,
the
every aspect of your
life
make
significant changes.
do not confuse the changes that occur with destiny
Your
life
changes
may begin with
itself.
a feeling of dissatisfaction.
It
may
be dissatisfaction with your work, your relationships, or any area of your life
that involves your self-expression or interaction
There
want
is
a feeling that
with the world.
you want deeper fulfillment in the situation and
who you truly are. The need to transform create a new one altogether, challenges you to
more
to express or give
the current situation, or
of
continue drawing on deeper inner resources as you
make your way.
Because most people find themselves at this type of crossroads in respect to their work,
Perhaps career deeper,
or a
is
let's
use
work
as the
example in
not the area that concerns you, but you long for a
more expansive
relationship, a
more compatible
new creative outlet. The information in this
a variety of areas in
your
change that has not yet If
work
is
this chapter.
life
where you
feel
circle of friends,
section can be applied to
the pull toward expanded
fully manifested.
your area of focus, perhaps you are yearning for a job that
allows you to express more fully
who you
are
and to make
perceivable contribution to the world. This yearning can passion.
become
a
You may sense your greater potential flowing through your body
so strongly that
it
feels
uncomfortable because you do not yet have the
appropriate action for releasing
it
into the world.
your true work that you are about to pop yet
a direct,
You
are so ready to find
—but you may not even know
what the form of that work is. Months can go by without your getting
any clearer about
it!
Still,
destiny, continue to pull
the yearning and readiness, your greater
on you.
LIVING THE SPLIT
At such times, the inner readiness unlimited living appears to outpace what
move
to is
into a
we
Remember
that the split
between the experience being. In this case
level of
happening in your outer
This incongruity between the inner and outer realities possible variations of the split
new
life.
one of many
is
discussed in "Journey into Form."
the gap in the personality's awareness
is
of limitation
you are witnessing
and the greater it
as the
reality of unlimited
gap between your growing
inner awareness of unlimitedness and the circumstances in your still feel
175
life
that
limiting.
In this version of the split, your job seems too limited to be a fulfilling
expression of your greater
expanded
in your personal
you are spinning your wheels.
passes,
you may
more empty and
more
feel
frustrated at
new work may be unfruitful. You feel like Because you do not yet really know where
understandable that you do not
is
it
yet even
life
work. Efforts to discover your
you are going,
As time
self.
feel
you are
progressing in measurable ways. After
still
more
effort
and
you may begin turning your
frustration,
energy against yourself with self-sabotaging thoughts: "Something
wrong with me
or
I
would have found my new work by now."
trying hard enough." "I
"I
am not clear enough." "I
am
not
spiritual."
should be more practical." In short, you have interpreted the existence
of the split to
mean that you
Or you may choose the
are personally flawed in flip side of
being antagonistic to yourself, you originates outside yourself.
ready for what
I
economy is working
minds
offer."
decide that the restriction
exists because the
"Society
are closed to
against me." "The job
not structured to allow people like
some way.
that interpretation. Instead of
may
"My problem
have to
limitation." "People's
is
should be more
"I
is
I
is
filled
what want
I
world
same regardless
of
is
have to
offer."
doesn't exist.
it.
"The
The world
me to make our contribution."
one you cannot
whether you perceive the flaw
outside you; you are stymied by
not
with density and
Both interpretations are based on the assumption that there somewhere, and usually the flaw
is
fix.
The
is
a flaw
effect is the
as being within
you or
This adds a sense of inadequacy or
incapacitation to the frustration you already
feel.
Clearly, a
new
option
COMING HOME
176
for relating to the situation is needed.
Although your personality will be searching, perhaps in exasperation, for
can do
at this
new
point
frantic
outer action to take, the most powerful thing you
may
simply be to accept that you are in the
become more consciously present within
it.
Below
split
and
are three basic steps
for beginning this acceptance.
ATTUNEMENT Accepting the Split
1.
take some quiet time and attune to the potential you sense
First,
growing within. Feel
it
streaming through every to go out into the
is
your true 2.
spirit into
as
it
cell in
from your depths and
arises
your body. Notice
how ready
Feel
it
as a passion,
and cherish
Feel the difference
restriction that is
it.
Let the
3.
it.
still
Open
full
how
that
between your expansive inner readiness and the
present in your outer
life.
the tension or discomfort of being caught in the in
vitality of
Then, remember your feeling that the outer reality has not yet
changed to match your inner readiness. Take time to notice feels.
you,
this energy
world and carry the expansiveness and
new work.
fills
spectrum of the experience be
to the love that
you
are.
Do
not try to minimize
split.
Stay with yourself
real.
Remember
that the unlimited love
you are made of streams through you even while you experience both the expansiveness and the discomfort of the I
am in
the
split,
I
am
unlimited love.
am."
9
I
split.
Perhaps think, "Even while
open to the urdimited love that
I
LIVING THE SPLIT
Making time most people
as
possible. all
awareness
for this
important.
You may have
a habit,
do, of trying to race through the split as quickly as
Your automatic reaction may be
to rev
up your energy
and, using
the effort you can muster, attempt a flying leap across the split to the
other side, where you hope your is
is
177
new work will be waiting.
an attempt to avoid the discomfort of living with the
You cannot
This exertion
split.
successfully cross the split that way.
You
will find
yourself stopped in the middle time and time again. Ironically, this
is
to
your benefit.
As you
resist the split
and its discomfort,
you resist some aspect ofyour self that knows it
needs to be included inyour move forward into
You continue split is
more expansive living.
to stop because the aspect of yourself that waits in the
worth stopping
for. It
might be an aspect of yourself you are not
conscious of that needs to be held close to your heart and carried with
new life. Perhaps it will even blossom and help you in essential ways when you get there. One way to extend friendship to this sometimes elusive aspect of you into the creation of your
yourself
is
to settle into the split for awhile
you quit trying to leap the
no longer
resist
what
is
split
and feel what
it is like.
and instead allow yourself to be
happening in the present
in
It
also changes
your immediate
course; that intention
goal.
all
You
it,
in an effort to
you
move
what
it
want your true work,
of
ahead. Instead, you surrender to the present and to finding out
can contribute to your journey. This makes
When
the difference.
still
need not weaken. Yet the primary goal becomes
simply being with whatever
is
revealing itself right now. In this surrender,
notice that aliveness of your intention
to find fulfilling
you
work, and you also
allow the discomfort of holding inner potential that has not yet come into fruition in the external world.
gathering power.
You
feel
the
split,
which
is
preparation for
COMING HOME
178
41
Empowering Yourself with Yearning and Not Knowing Spending time consciously in the
Not Knowing, which some people
the blank slate of "emptiness".
Not Knowing
an important
is
have undoubtedly already sensed frightened of
it
and
keep you from gaining Fear of Not
clarity
as
and
lost
split.
than
to let
serve you,
it
something that will weaken you and
part of
ever.
what motivated you
You may have
Knowing, assuming that giving disoriented
You
may have been
power, but you
its
ally.
about your path.
Knowing may be
trying to leap over the
call "the void" or
— and powerful—
Without understanding how
fled.
Not Knowing
easy to fear
it is
you the opportunity to face
split gives
in to
would
it
When you
resisted
to continue
and avoided Not you even more
leave
are already frustrated or scared
know what your new work is to be or how to find it, state of knowing even less may seem like the wrong
because you do not
moving into
a
direction entirely.
Not Knowing is not a
lack of ideas. It
transcends personality and connects
it
offers,
continues to offer
you will continue
emptiness.
clear, pure,
open state of awareness that
you with unlimited
Not Knowing does not go away value;
a
is
just because Yet,
itself.
resisting
if
it
possibility.
you don't recognize
that
and trying
to
fill
its
it
apparent
What will you try to fill it with? Knowing, of course.
will attempt to
you
its
you remain unaware of what
When you fear Not Knowing, your natural defense is
You
Fortunately,
hope
fill
get
will
the
to try to know.
Not Knowing with thoughts and
you
to
your
new work.
uncomfortable with open-ended questions and soothes
up with answers. emptiness of the believes that the
Similarly, split
way
and
it
is
tries to
to find your
ideas
Personality itself
is
by coming
uncomfortable with the apparent fill
it
new work
with is
tangibles. Personality
to stay in control, in this
how much more empowering and enriching it can be to "not know" your way there.
case to "know" your
way
there. It is not
aware of
LIVING THE SPLIT
Not Knowing
powerful state of being that transcends the
a
is
thoughts and ideas generated by your personality,
intellect.
and can create only according
known. In your longing greater than the
for true
work you have
The
into
Ironically,
one
way
work, you are asking
already known.
to go
Not Knowing; there you
are
intellect is in the
to the limitation
To
find
to a state of awareness greater than the awareness
known.
179
for it,
it
has already
work
that
is
you must open
you have already
beyond what you have known
is
to go
wide open.
Personality s knowing automatically screens out possibilities that are unfamiliar.
Not Knowing does not
possibilities your intellect
can plan;
The yearning a variation
it
can create or your personality
opens you to the unlimited.
to find your true
on the
work
desire for true self
we'll call true yearning.
not so
much
and
(or relationship or creativity) is is,
therefore, another pure state
Allowing true yearning and Not Knowing
creates the beginning of something It is
limit you to the
new and more expanded
together
in your
life.
the marriage of true yearning and knowing, but the
marriage of true yearning and Not
Knowing
that yields the greatest
possibility.
9 MEDITATION Yearning and Not Knowing
1.
Close your eyes, and allow yourself to breathe gently and
Follow a few breaths into your throat your heart
your breath 2.
area....
is
area....
Follow a few breaths into your
belly....
gently and easily taking you into your true
As you continue
your yearning to
to breathe gently
surface....
and
easily....
Follow a few breaths into
Assume
that
self....
easily into true self, allow
You may feel your yearning passionately or you
COMING HOME
180
may barely feel it is
important.
to surface, 3.
It is
will
makes no
all; it
your intent.
difference. It is not the sensation that
When your intent is to allow your yearning
happen whether you
to present
itself.
Not Knowing may appear
no image or feeling or sense of presents
it
is....
Now
also invite the
Not
Notice the Not Knowing. as a blank screen,
an empty hole, a
may even come as nothing at all: anything. Open to it in whatever way it
beautiful light, or as something else.
5.
feel it or not....
Continue to sense the yearning as
Knowing 4.
it
at
It
itself.....
Allow the yearning and Not Knowing to spend time with you
together....
Breathe gently and easily into the yearning and Not Knowing,
allowing yourself to trust their presence.... 6.
When
you are ready to come out of meditation, turn your
awareness to your whole body, noticing
Then slowly
stretch,
and open your
how
it feels
from head to
toe....
eyes.
9 42
Empowering Your Speech Everything you
say affects your consciousness,
changing your habits of thinking.
new and its
fulfilling possibilities,
guidance. But
When your
either
affirming
or
statements allow room for
you affirm your true
self
and can receive
when you speak with restriction, you identify with your
personality's focus
on limitation and
trigger
your thoughts to continue
along a narrow track.
For example,
if
your personality
resists
for the security of concrete answers,
don't
know what to
work looking
do.
I
wish
I
Not Knowing and
you may automatically
is
anxious
say, "I just
knew!" Immediately your mind will go to
for answers, trying to
fill
the Not
Then you miss the opportunity to expand.
Knowing with knowing.
LIVING THE SPLIT
To
practice talking about your yearning and
Not Knowing
that reinforce your openness to unlimited possibilities, take sit
and use the following conversational guidelines with
It is
in
181
ways
some time
to
a trusted friend.
important that this person agrees to listen without giving you verbal
feedback, advice, or suggestions.
experience
is
The
ability to listen
and receive your
her or his greatest contribution.
9 ATTUNEMENT Talking about Yearning and Not Knowing
1.
Begin by describing your yearning.
feels. If
you have
Open your heart and tell how it
visions, emotions, physical feelings, or sensations of
energy that come from the yearning, describe them. Your yearning valuable: treat
it
as a treasure
describing the
you in
its
Not Knowing. Allow the Not Knowing
strength and openness. Describe
do not try to
much
in detail to your friend,
its
just blank space,
is
yourself saying, "You
rushing
know,
this
emptiness
space."
emptiness really gives
something.
into
empty
can
I
time
to present itself to
may
and
bring you
and beauty. For example, you may say something
"The Not Knowing
avoid
it
emptiness. Sitting with
fill its
to its spaciousness
to
you are showing your friend.
After you speak about your yearning, spend just as
2.
is
like,
Next you may find
me the time I need
move more slowly and
consciously."
Of
course,
what you
actually say
important things are these: its
own
terms;
(b)
Communicate your
(a) Let
Recognize
full
may be
quite different, but the
Not Knowing present Not
Knowing
as
itself to
your
ally;
its
Knowing
purpose
is
— to what
right
is real
(c)
experience; (d) Let yourself speak with the
assumption that Not Knowing has purpose. You do not have to
what
you on
know
now. You just need to be receptive to Not
and trustworthy about
9
it.
82
COMING HOME
43 Setting Your Course
Any path
of transformation will bring
Practical decisions
What
must be made.
In
which
Whom
actions should you take?
you to unexpected crossroads. direction should you go?
should you choose as traveling
companions? As your goals and values change, your old
making choices may seem
where you
exactly
are headed,
are caught in uncertainty
can you
make
feeble or irrelevant.
you may
feel
If
doubly
criteria for
you do not yet see at a loss.
When you how
and confusion but have decisions to make,
the wisest choices?
The Not Knowing can
Although the
help.
intellect likes to think that
information comes from knowing, most of your true information comes
from Not Knowing. As
directly
we
just discussed,
if
you
rely solely
on
knowing, you are limited by the confines of what your personality perceives or has already experienced.
awareness, the
knowing
For staying on one plane of
new
exceedingly helpful; for expanding into
is
territory, the
Not Knowing is
a greater resource.
To make
a choice, first sit
with the Not Knowing. Spend time with
Make your peace with
it.
Allow yourself to notice your impatience or
inclination to hurry through
When you to fear
are out of touch
Not Knowing because
with true
and to the need to grab
comfort or security. The feeling
me
okay. Doing that will
thought,
"If
I
it.
self,
you are particularly vulnerable
at things to is,
"That will
make me happy."
of insecurity or fear.
do to give yourself
make me
Or, you
safe.
a sense of
That will
may have
make
the panicky
don't find the right thing to do soon, I'm going to be in a lot
of trouble!"
Noticing your version of this inner dialogue
is
helpful because
you unmistakable feedback that you are identifying with
When
you catch yourself
in that pattern,
self.
answers in that moment.
gives
limitation.
take a breath and give
compassion to the part of your personality that out of touch with true
it
is
suffering because
it is
Compassionate presence will help more than
LIVING THE SPLIT
183
You came into physical form to be human and, from
the midst of human limitation,
open to unlimited being.
to
To complete your which includes
purpose you must accept being
life
power
that actually comes from true self
are living the limited aspect of
humanness
The pure longing
to complete your
your being that
it
human,
A response of fear, panic, and looking
living in limitation.
to externals for the
fully
well.
purpose
life
will continue to pull you
Do not be
is
is
proof you
afraid of this.
so strongly inherent in
onward no matter how
thoroughly submerged in the limited you have become. After you recognize that the sense of urgency comes from your personality and you extend compassion to
it,
take another deep breath
and gently turn to the longing and Not Knowing
what
to do. This
lifts
How
your guidance about
the decision from the hands of the small self that
is
from which
a
trying to stay in control and gives
decision of true
as
to the greater
it
self,
empowerment can be made.
can you do
One way
this?
is
to
become comfortable with the
"Yearning and Not Knowing" meditation described at the end of the
"Gathering Power" chapter, and then to add some steps for offering your choices to
Not Knowing. The lengthened meditation is
listed below.
9 MEDITATION Yearning,
1.
Not Knowing, and Decisions
Close your eyes, and allow yourself to breathe gently and easily
Follow a few breaths into your throat your heart area your breath 2.
is
area.
.
.
.
Follow a few breaths into
Follow a few breaths into your belly
—
Assume
that
gently and easily taking you into your true self
As you continue
to breathe gently
your yearning to surface.
.
.
.
You may
and
feel
easily into true self, allow
your yearning passionately or
COMING HOME
184
you may barely that
is
feel it at
important.
It is
yearning to surface, 3.
all; it
your intent.
will
it
makes no
difference. It
When
your intent
happen whether you
Continue to sense the yearning as
not the sensation
is
to allow your
is
not
feel it or
Now also invite the Not
it is
Knowing to present itself. Notice the Not Knowing 4.
Not Knowing may appear
as a blank screen, an
beautiful light, or as something else.
no image or
It
may even come
feeling or sense of anything.
Open
to
it
empty
hole, a
as nothing at
in
all:
whatever way
it
presents itself 5.
Allow the yearning and Not Knowing to spend time with you
together.
.
.
.
Breathe gently and easily into the yearning and Not
Knowing, allowing yourself to trust 6.
Hand one
this possibility?"
of your choices to
You
Not Knowing, and
are giving that possibility to
reflect a greater perspective to
7.
their presence
Not Knowing so
it
can
you
Allow Not Knowing to reveal the essence of that choice to you.
That choice
may
or deadened
start vibrating
— or
something
with
else
observing the feeling or image that
When you
life
or
it
may become
may happen. Spend is
few moments
presented
and hand Not Knowing the next
one.
process until you have gotten energetic feedback on are considering. If
You can repeat the all
the choices you
you have several choices to present to Not Knowing
and become fatigued before you get through them you are
a
duller, faded,
have received the message about that possible choice, put
that choice aside
until
"What about
say,
rested.
all,
Then repeat the meditation
simply take a break for the
remaining
choices. 8.
When
you are ready to come out of meditation, turn your
awareness to your whole body, noticing
Then slowly
stretch,
and open your
eyes.
9
how it feels from head to
toe.
.
.
LIVING THE SPLIT
The feedback from Not Knowing may be
images that you
may be more abstract or subtle. You may go entirely by how you feel. With practice you will become more
immediately understand, or
have to
specific
185
it
adept at understanding the "language" you share with Not Knowing. You
can then consider the information you receive from Not Knowing as you
weigh your choices and make your If
each possibility looks or
decisions.
feels
wonderful as Not Knowing
the energy back to you, consider that perhaps you cannot in your choice. In fact, even it,
make
a
reflects
mistake
though you may not be consciously aware of
any decision you make comes from some important part of yourself
that
wants expression. As you follow through on
a decision,
turns out to bring you joy or sorrow, abundance or of experiences,
manifested,
some aspect
and you
of your being
gave
it
loss, or a
wanted
expression
to
whether
combination
be expressed, or
by making that
Manifesting and interacting with that aspect of
self via
it
choice.
the situation you
created from that choice exposes you to learning that can enable you to
grow and move on. Sometimes
it is
better to
to be forever afraid of
thing
is
make
a decision
making the wrong
simply that you come fully to
life
and
see
what happens than
The most important
choice.
while you are here in this world.
Any choice you make carries that possibility.
44 Updating the As you lovingly accept your
Map
personality,
become
emotions, and take counsel from Not Knowing, a that allows you to look
familiar
with your
new vision may develop
more honestly and creatively
at
your
life.
You may
begin to question the unnecessary judgments and restrictions you have placed on yourself and others over the years. You
may want
to release
outdated emotional or behavioral patterns you adopted for survival at earlier stages of
this?
your
life
that are not
empowering now.
How can you
do
COMING HOME
86
Transformation occurs more smoothly and deeply
when you extend
compassion and love to yourself. Think about loving yourself for a
moment. For some people, the mere idea overwhelming;
seems
it
of loving
themselves
They unconsciously assume
like too big a job.
they are so unlovable by nature that any efforts to love themselves
be exhausting or would simply
They think they have
fail.
feelings of love, love, love that never stop. If
you
is
would
to conjure
What an arduous task! you can do four
feel that loving yourself is difficult,
things:
ATTUNEMENT Finding Affection for Self
1.
Remember
the love that you
always vibrant and
unlimited love
is
easier to feel
some love
radiates through you, not 2.
Think
Love
most
you remember that
is
your body,
it is
something that already
something you have to create on the spot.
in terms of simply having
tiny love. In your
When
alive in every cell of
for yourself.
Affection seems easier, as though is
are.
it is
self-critical
a
some
affection for yourself.
scaled-down expression of love.
It
moments, you do not have to stretch
so far to find a tiny feeling of affection for yourself, yet the benefit of that affection will
be just as great as
yourself. Let tiny love 3.
ask,
you were enthusiastically in love with
— or a very subtle feeling of affection—be enough.
As you catch yourself repeating your old
"Where
my
is
asking, gently
uncomfortable,
may
is
pattern, take a
affection for myself in this situation?"
and with genuine
the old pattern
are. It
if
sincerity,
one of self-hatred or
it is still
possible to find
you will find
self-criticism,
some inner
moment
to
As you continue affection.
which
is
affection for
Even
if
terribly
who you
help to imagine that you are stepping back far enough for a
greater perspective. Or, imagine that you are seeing with bigger eyes, eyes
that can find even the tiniest affection for
may be.
self,
no matter
how
hidden
it
LIVING THE SPLIT
Do
4.
Sweet Me.
Whether you
words
silently say the
Sweet
are sitting quietly or doing something,
Me and let them drop
are dropping pebbles into a pond. settle
within you, wherever
loving. feeling.
more
You
are simply letting Sweet
With
times,
Assume
Me
into you, as though you
Me
Sweet
will automatically
You do not need
needed.
it is
187
to feel sweet or
whatever you are
settle alongside
that understanding, drop Sweet Me's into yourself a
with
at least a
few
breath or two between them.
9 moment
Let's take a
to examine
what
it is
like to
be caught in an
outdated pattern or emotion or behavior. You want to change feel like it will
never fade. Looking closely,
we
earlier:
discussed
we find the same two elements
more expanded way
of being that expresses your true
know whether the change may happen.
restrictive pattern will ever
In short, you are in a
control. Personality
will try to
do
it
is
the small self (personality)
wants to leap over the
split as
by taking immediate action to
change or
how
who wants
to stay in
that
efforts,
soon as possible and
avoid, deny, reject, or
based on control, are in the
split.
can you do? Once again, you will be most effective by being
present with yourself and honest about split again,
and
this is uncomfortable."
how
you
When
feel.
the yearning,
("I
want
a
"Here
in "(I'm
("I
don't
but I'm open and committed to
know how
it
am
in the
still
flee,
doing
new way of being that comes from my
true self rather than from old, restrictive conditioning"),
Knowing be with you
I
you no longer try to
you can witness the pattern you have been caught this"), feel
yet you do not
and most often lead to frustration and an increase
discomfort of being caught in the
What
self,
for a
split!
dismantle the restrictive pattern. These rarely effective
but you
Not Knowing. You yearn
true yearning and
Joining you there
it,
to
happening").
make
and
let
the Not
this pattern change,
COMING HOME
188
Being in the split
is
like sitting
on top of a pyramid;
whether or not you can feel all energies
are aligned to give you power.
Because the predominant feelings in the fear,
and
frustration, the
it,
power
available to
split are often helplessness,
you
is easily
overlooked and
whether you are conscious or unconscious about what
misdirected. Yet
you are doing, whatever you do will carry power.
If
you
resist the split,
your resistance will be amplified, reinforcing the sense of being caught in a struggle.
This will not help you to change the pattern that originally
distressed you.
If,
however, you compassionately allow yourself to
feel
the
longing for change and the feelings that go with being in the split (discomfort, anticipation, excitement, fear, etc.), the creative energies of
both your longing and your willingness to be present with yourself will be empowered for you. As you also open to Not Knowing, your ability to
draw from the unlimited Source possibilities
With
will
be
strengthened,
and new
can come to you.
this
kind of receptivity and empowerment, you are open to
transformation and are attuning to your greater potential. In time you
may need
to take specific actions to support your personality in its
change. Proceed,
knowing that whatever you genuinely want
and are willing to create through the assistance of true
Your destiny
is
self. It is
as fluid
and transmutable
You do
this not
by
It is
inside
moment by your own unbounded
as
you
are. If
you do not
you are going or the weight of the baggage you revisions.
self is possible.
not preordained by some outside source.
you, created and re-created in ever}7
for yourself
carry,
resisting or controlling
like
where
you can make
what you
find
on
your path, but by directing your awareness. Unlimited possibilities await you.
LIVING THE SPLIT
189
45 Getting Free of Self-Judgment Feeling separate from the love that you are
makes you easy prey
judgment. Self-judgment
never strikes just once, but
is
unrelenting;
it
to self-
uses your thoughts to attack again and again. Sooner or later these rejecting thoughts can invalidate everything about
who you
are
self-
and the
path you are on, leaving you disoriented and confused. Heavy with doubt,
you drag your sign that
it is
feet
all
bad. There
You can view
When
more rewarding. This
life isn't
is
a
is
restricting as self-rejecting thoughts can be, they are
an energy
how
advantage, no matter
claim.
why
time to expand your perception.
As painful and not
and wonder
at the core of
each that you can use to your
crippling the content of the thought
that core energy as hidden nourishment that
is
may
be.
yours to
you are caught in self-sabotaging thoughts, the following
become present and aware enough
three steps can help you
to use that
energy constructively.
9 ATTUNEMENT Facing Self-Judgment
Stop for a
1.
occurring. will
It
moment and
will not help
realize that self-rejecting thoughts are
you to ignore them or passively accept them.
help you to acknowledge their presence. Let yourself feel
2.
how
uncomfortable
turned against yourself. Notice that not only is also
It
it
feels
it
is
it
a
to have your energy
mental discomfort, but
uncomfortable to your body to be bathed with
critical
thought. 3.
Use the power
of your intention: Gently
want the energy within the experience of true
self.
self-rejecting
and
clearly state that
you
thoughts to bring you a greater
COMING HOME
190
9 So there you
are,
noticing a painfully critical thought, and feeling the
emotional and physical discomfort
it
remind yourself of what you want: "Even in I
want
this
thought to bring
be more accurate,
say, "I
its
energy
important.
is
you to true
self,
self."
It is
The
the power
—whether
—
the core energy
life force.
That
is
as well as "positive" ones for opening
remember to transcend
the content
All thoughts spring
love
and go
is all possibility.
in the experience of Source, the
in your
life
thought.
and
why
of
The content
real
and
is
more you
are
is
if
you
you to true
self
if
what you
immersed of
are
immersed
in unlimited love,
what
are thinking.
your awareness to a deeper
is
What
happening a beautiful
Believing the content
personality.
On
self.
What
is
easy
seems most
carries the least
power and
level.
Judgmental thought can be destructive level.
you
unlimited, unconditional
excellent practice for opening to true
shift
life
"negative" thoughts
The more you
and true to the judgmental mind actually
truth
any
of
and
irony to find Source even through your self-critical thoughts! This to do
or
essence the
its
love, creativity,
and absolute well-being, regardless
and regardless
pleasant
as
it
living
to the core energy.
from Source. Source
and well-being. Source
all possibility,
— of
— carries in
always secondary to the urdimited
force the thought carries at its core.
work
between the thought and
you experience
urdimited love and creativity of vibrant is
to a
it.
unpleasant, good or bad, limited or unlimited
thought
Or, to
me
thought to bring
at the core of all thoughts, feelings, things,
creation
All
distinction
at the core of
You want to align yourself with
creatures.
and discomfort,
this criticism
energy of this
you
it,
not the content of the thought that will bring
but the energy
Energy exists
the midst of
me to a greater experience of true self."
want the
greater experience of true
From
causes.
if
you stay
at the
content
damages your self-image and hurts your
the other hand, resisting or rebelling against judgmental
LIVING THE SPLIT
thought if
is
191
depleting because you are always fighting a losing battle. Even
you try to defend against the content
with turnaround statements such "There's nothing
thinking starts
as,
wrong with me.
dissolves
I'm really okay," the judgmental
self-rejecting
Then you
defense.
an exhausting war.
It is
and the harm turns
engage with the content of
by countering
"No, I'm not bad, I'm good" or
up again the moment you stop your
must leap into battle again and again.
The war
of self -judgment
to healing
when you no
longer
thoughts but go straight to the
Source energy within them that will nurture you. You free yourself from being \ictimized by self-judgment, and self-judgment becomes, like everything
else, just
another vehicle to reconnect you with Source.
Source
When
it
is
always the healing.
becomes your habit to choose Source
rejection, that shift
in the midst of self-
changes your entire relationship with the world. By
disengaging from the content of self-rejecting thought and choosing to be
empowered and
by the Source energy
at its core,
you
transcend limitation and align with unlimitedness. You open to true
self.
As you develop
carried forward
this
new
pattern, you will find yourself automatically
applying this transcendence to other situations in your
To
see
situation,
You
how
this happens, take a
one in which you
feel
boxed
created in your body yourself;
your body
it.
Notice that
when your
feels
into a corner
out.
happening to you, yet
feeling. It is similar to
the feeling
thoughts are harshly judgmental of
it.
imagine that even though you are trapped, you are able to
remember the love that you and self.
is
and cannot get
the pain of the self-hostility and the distress of
not being able to get away from
Now
as well.
to imagine a threatening
are trapped, feeling that something terrible
you are helpless to stop
true
moment
life
As you do
relaxes into ease
well-being
is
this,
and
to reconnect in another
way with your
your fear and pain soften, and your body slowly
joy. It is safe to
be expansive. You
assured regardless of what
is
know
that your
happening externally. You
sense that the core energy of everything in the situation around you
192
COMING HOME
including the corner you were boxed into love
a carrier of the unlimited
is
and life force of Source.
By going through self,
—
whenever the
personality
learn
— transcending to Source, or true self-judgment occurs — your body and
kind of
this
distress of
shift
transcendence
repetition, the shift will
as
a
new
pattern.
happen automatically and increase
As you become used to transcending to Source
situations that create the
wonderful
when
same type this shift
Other times
it
ways
of distress in your body.
becomes automatic.
It
at the well-being
means you Sometimes
are this
that you do not consciously notice
will be a delightful surprise.
you will rejoice
in its scope.
be triggered in other
naturally seeking the unlimited in the midst of limitation. will occur in such subtle
enough
in the midst of the distress
of self-judgment, transcendence to Source will also
It is
After
it
As
brings you.
it
it.
becomes second nature,
LIVING THE SPLIT
193
CHERIE DETER McARTHUR Cherie
was
a
mild mannered bookkeeper with a big dream: She wanted to
live in paradise.
Tired of city
life
in California
and work that didn't make
her heart sing, or even hum, her daydreams carried her to Hawaii. She
longed to see the lush green of jungle, inhale warm, moist, tropical
and live in
rhythm that brought her close to the land.
a slower
Her dream started
to
come
when
true in 1990
she and her husband,
packed up their two kids and moved to the Big Island
Ian,
Cherie became a flower vendor, selling to tourists cruise ships in port,
In 1996 Cherie
air,
and worked part-time in
and Ian bought
of Hawaii.
who poured
off the
a nursery.
lOacre macadamia nut farm. Or the
a
remnants of one. Long neglected and reclaimed by the jungle, the 12-foot trees
were barely
visible.
worked. Thick grasses as
two inches their
They had tall as
to be uncovered before they could be
the trees
filled
the orchards. Jungle vines
in diameter gripped the tree trunks
and branches, twisting
way to the tree tops for light.
Ian's career creating special effects for
him out
the purchase of the farm but took
Hollywood movies financed of state for
months
So Cherie rolled up her sleeves and got to work. She learned
at a time.
how to use a
machete and scythe and attacked the grasses towering over her head. She took on the jungle single-handedly a right
—
literally.
Cherie had been born with
arm that stopped just below the elbow,
so she
had only one hand.
That had never stopped her before, so why would it now?
Even with the help labor, slashing
of
men
and removing the
unwinding them from the 600
dream was realized
as
it
took two years of hard
grasses, then
hacking the vines and
Cherie hired,
trees, to
ready the farm. In 1998 Cherie's
Puna Girl Farms went into production
of
macadamia nuts and macadamia flower honey. Puna
Girl
Farms was good
continued, but she loved
it.
for
Cherie's
soul.
The hard work
For nine years she and her workers
mowed
the tenacious orchard grass, pruned and fertilized the trees, gathered the nuts,
and delivered the harvest to
screamed across the
island,
a processor. After each tropical
they cleared away broken branches and
storm fallen
COMING HOME
194
They battled wild pigs who damaged the orchard, and when
trees.
seemed the pigs might win, erected an farm. Cherie In early
plummeted
ended every day dog 2007 the bottom to a
tired,
fell
electric fence to
keep them
it
off the
but her heart sang anyway.
The
out.
price of
low that hadn't been seen
macadamia nuts
in generations. Suddenly
Cherie stood to lose her farm. The cost of picking the nuts
extremely exceed the price she could get at market that she
would
so
was unable to
harvest her crop. She couldn't afford to take her crop to market for such a couldn't afford to pull out the trees and plant something else, and
loss,
couldn't afford to
do nothing. Cherie was stuck.
People recommended selling her land. Cherie loved her farm. her dream lose
it.
come
true,
and she had worked hard
And her employees depended on her;
for
it.
It
was
She didn't want to
she didn't
want
to put
them
out of work. Cherie couldn't figure out a solution. Or, more accurately, her personality couldn't figure out a solution. So Cherie took the issue to
someone who could: her true
self.
Cherie turned to techniques she had learned in class,
which had met throughout the previous
year.
my Living from True Self She sat quietly, did a
few minutes of sounding, and then imagined that her breath was breathing her, gently and easily, into true
farm needs to pay for
what
I
itself.
self.
What can I do?
I
To
turn
true self she said, "This it
over to you.
can do." As she continued breathing into true
self,
Show me
an answer
came: "You are in a state of confusion, but there are simple answers. Visualize
what you want, and proceed. Your wanting has
strength."
A few days later, Cherie again sat quietly, sounded, and imagined that her breath
worry,
was breathing her into
let go, receive.
true
self.
Again an answer came: "Don't
Things are already being taken care of by your true
self."
Cherie, used to relying on a plan it,
was
in
new territory.
It
Not Knowing. She wanted
Wanting was something
was the
and her own hard work to execute
territory of yearning (or
to save the farm yet didn't
familiar to her. Proceeding in a state of
this
important was
to true self to learn
new and
wanting) and
know how to do it. Not Knowing about
disorienting. Cherie
how to navigate Not Knowing.
had turned
LIVING THE SPLIT
True
self
was
that
had
let
her
know that goodness was in the works,
greater than anything her personality could see from
perspective or make happen on
goodness
its
limited
own. With the message "Don't worry,
its
true self hadn't been suggesting that Cherie
let go, receive,"
195
passive,
but had been guiding her to develop
As long
as her action-oriented personality
a state of
open
become
receptivity.
was dominating, she
couldn't
see her deeper path or receive the greater goodness waiting there for her.
A well-developed
state of receptivity
and new roots into true
help her to find her way and gain the most from
During the next few weeks,
stress,
would
it.
worry, and panic about the farm's
situation visited Cherie several times a day. Each time, self's
self
remembering true
messages, she chose not to be controlled by her personality's
distress,
but instead to turn toward her true
how
could not yet see
that well-being
even
self well-being,
would manifest
in her
reminded herself,
I'm open to
it."
"I've
already asked for true
Or she would take
self's
a breath into true
help. self.
I
she
When
life.
the distress tapped her on the shoulder, she didn't deny or reject just
if
it;
she
believe in
it.
Or she would
turn her thoughts to something enjoyable that helped her remain open to well-being.
Each time she gently chose well-being over her personality's reaction of distress, relief
and
lighter.
flowed through her body immediately. She
Stomach problems and
stress
happier
felt
headaches that had begun to
plague her disappeared.
As Cherie practiced her new well-being more automatic. She
also
process,
found worry and
it
became
easier
distress occurring
and
with
decreasing frequency and her well-being lasting longer. For example, early
on she
of worry.
A
felt
happy and balanced for maybe an hour between episodes
few days
later she felt
between episodes of worry. Within
happy and balanced a
few more days
it
distress
were taking
One evening process, she
six
a
back
weeks
all
to three
day.
Worry
seat to well-being.
after Cherie
and Ian were sipping
called "the park."
two hours
was up
hours, and so on until happiness and balance were lasting
and
for
had started her well-being
cocktails in the area of the farm they
The park was two
acres of cleared land that
had no
COMING HOME
196
trees, just lush,
mowed grass on
top of a
overlooking other farms and the ocean. "This
is
this
all
would
was
their haven.
love
it.
we
There's just got to be something
is
can do
beauty to save the farm."
They had had
new
that offered gorgeous views
such a beautiful spot," Cherie mused, "and this view
amazing. People
with
It
hill
this conversation before. Ian grinned
and repeated the
moment
catch phrase they had coined in a similarly wistful
nights earlier,
a
few
"Build a pavilion, and they will come."
Later in the
week Cherie was
talking with the receptionist in her
chiropractor's office about her dilemma. "We're trying to figure out
something to do with the park.
The receptionist took "You're giving
tour
company
lunches.
me
Do you have any ideas?"
in a quick breath
goose bumps," she
and held
said. "Part of
the
for a
it
week
I
moment.
work
for a
that's looking for a place to take tourists for their picnic
think your park would be perfect! Most of our tourists have
I
never seen a macadamia farm."
Days set
up
later the
owners
of the tour
company met Cherie
picnic tables under canopies, and
handed Cherie
in "the park,"
a schedule.
Soon
they started bringing their tours to Puna Girl Farms for lunch. Cherie
became the ever met,
first "real, live
macadamia farmer" most
and she happily stepped into the
she loved so much,
selling
Chatting about the farm
star fruit, pineapples,
grew on her property made her happy. Cherie
had she achieved her dream with people from
all
had
her honey, and giving samples of her
macadamia nuts plus the bananas, also
role.
of the tourists
of living in paradise,
and lychee that
realized that not only
now
she
was
sharing
it
over the world. Yes, her true self definitely had
known what to do. In
the following months the size
increased,
and Cherie and Ian
and frequency of the tours
built their pavilion.
Enough income was
generated for the farm workers to remain employed; they maintained the orchards and kept the jungle at bay so nut production would be ready to
resume whenever prices should go back up. The farm was saved! But there was more to purpose
it
it
than
that.
Cherie had used the
had manifested: to deepen her
crisis for
the
personality's roots in true self
and to take her dream, the farm in
LIVING THE SPLIT
197
paradise, to its next level.
Her
personality could not have seen the big picture or have figured out the details for
making
it
happen.
been orchestrated by true
It
had been
a plan so big
it
could only have
self.
Cherie had succeeded by learning that Not Knowing was not a or passive state but a state of profound receptivity in
was
which goodness
percolating for her; by turning over her dilemma to true
opening to true face of stress
self's
self
and
guidance; and by choosing deeper well-being in the
and worry. Cherie had found
a
new way
to navigate into
abundance,
Visit Cherie, Ian,
weak
and Puna Girl Farms
at
www.PunaGirlFarms.com
Part IX
9
AWAKENED PERSONALITY Loyal Servant to Unlimited Spirit
46 Transformation and Perfection
Living your
life
ongoing process of transformation
as an
adventure. In facing the challenges that strength, develop emotional depth
limitation that
may
and
is
a marvelous
come your way, you gain inner agility,
and learn to transcend
otherwise continue to lock you into patterns of
and unhappiness.
struggle
Yet, as
with everything, there
is
a
need
for balance.
An
over-reliance
on transformation can be an addiction, which occurs when people continuously focus on change because they cannot accept themselves as they
are.
Because the motivation for this kind of transformation
toward change become
rejection, these efforts
with
self.
1.
Here are some
No
matter
a distraction
is self-
from being
pitfalls of this pattern:
how much
change
is
made,
it is
never enough to be
fully satisfying. 2.
Because the change that has been made was not based on the
unconditional self-love and well-being of true disappointingly limited in 3.
The basic issue
its
of self -rejection
Transformation addition or
scope or does not
may be
is
The
turns out to be
last.
avoided and is never resolved.
directed inward (changing the
outward (changing the world) and often
urgency.
self, it
carries a tone of life or death
basic assumption of the inner directed pattern
change to be okay." The outer directed pattern
me to be okay." dialogue may include
self)
is,
is,
T must
"The world (or other
people) must change for Inner directed
"To grow or heal, manifest
money
with myself,
I
I
statements like the following:
must change." "To get along
or to contribute to the
better with people or to
world— I must
change." "To live
must become something better than what
Outer directed dialogue may be about the same assumption that
it is
issues,
I
already am."
but with the
other people or the world that must change rather
than (or at least more than) the
self.
COMING HOME
202
The need you
leaves
to change yourself (or anyone else) to attain well-being
means
at a definite disadvantage. It
living
with emptiness and
insecurity while you try to become (or get someone else to become)
whatever you think
is
better.
The
effort
you expend to create
this
change
can be endless and exhausting. This does not
mean you should
give
up on transformation and be
stuck with inner patterns and outer circumstances that do not feel right
Growth and change
to you.
are important.
It
may be
helpful,
however, to
take an honest look at the attitude that motivates your change. beliefs
If
the
about yourself that prompt your change are healthy, the changes
you make will support your greater health. rejecting,
your changes, no matter
how
If
those beliefs are
self-
dramatic, will have limited
benefit.
What if the real truth is that you are enough right now, just as you are? What if well-being is your birthright and will come alive for you in an instant if you are willing to let yourself have it? What if all change and transformation in you and in the world are options but not necessities?
Understand that from unlimited
wrong with
spirit's perspective,
you; you are perfect as you are.
there
You do not have
blemish. Even your suffering or the suffering of others
is
difficult to accept
nothing
a flaw or a
not a sign that
anything needs to be fixed. Everything carries perfection as
Although your personality may find
is
it is.
this
or believe,
nothing about you or the world needs to be
Vibrant
through
all
life force,
changed for well-being to occur.
unconditional love, and unlimited well-being flow
things, all beings,
and
all
situations as they are right
now.
These qualities already exist everywhere. Everyone and everything are
made If
of them, although this truth
often overlooked.
tomorrow, every person on earth were to open consciously to the
vibrant there
is
life force,
unconditional love, and unlimited well-being of Source,
would be an
instant shift in consensus about
what should be done
AWAKENENED PERSONALITY
203
There no longer would be panic, urgency, or resistance
in the world.
about making change. Instead there would be the knowing that Source present and available everywhere, in the biggest disasters as the most beautiful creations of nature. People
would go
as in
would make change from
pure choice and well-being rather than from urgency and energies
much
is
into creating an environment for
suffering. Their
all
creatures that
expresses the great well-being that already exists.
This intent
different than trying to change things so people can
is
escape suffering. The experience of suffering
mean
it
is real,
carries the greatest truth. Its reality is
orientation
to
but that does not
based in the personality's
and separation. Actions taken
limitation
to
escape
suffering reinforce the belief in suffering as a foundational force of
existence.
Recognize that
when you
identify
with
life at a
are focused within the illusion of limitation,
perceived and experienced. At that the forms in
to
which
level,
Well-being
is
it
and
relate to
being that already
is
at the
where
suffering
is
suffering will not it
be
at that level.
the natural state
of true self and unlimited
you want to transform
is
you
your actions may bring change
suffering occurs, but
ehminated as long as you believe in
If
which
superficial level,
suffering, bring
deepest
level.
spirit.
your awareness to the well-
There, free from suffering, you
can make choices and changes from a pure sense of inner peace, regardless
of
the
external
situation.
Your actions will then carry
unlimited creative power and will continue to reveal well-being as the
most basic If
you
reality.
feel
urgency about creating change in your
you probably do not experience yourself life
force,
life
or in the world,
as a vehicle for Source: vibrant
unconditional love, and unlimited well-being. You
may be
focusing on change to compensate for this lack. Creating change becomes a
replacement for what you want most deeply but do not have. Yet,
because
it is
more
superficial,
making change
in yourself or others
is
204
COMING HOME
much less
satisfying than having the full experience of source.
from Source, the change you make
are in separation
someone
else, in
that calls to
Again,
the world
—
is
— in
never quite enough. There
is
When you
yourself, in
always more
you with that familiar urgency.
by no means
is
this a suggestion that
you should stop trying to
create change or take action to relieve suffering. Being passive ineffective in the
Source.
world
is
no solution
to missing your connection
and with
However, you may need to face your longing for the inner peace of
deep connection.
There
is
one way to
tell
easily
and instantly
whether you feel separate from Source:
The degree to which you feel is
It is
and
distress in your life
the degree to which you are in separation.
important to distinguish between
being separate
from Source. There
separate, because Source, or true
is
self, is
feeling
separate from Source
no such thing
as actually being
in every aspect of yourself
and
your world. For our purposes, being in separation simply means losing conscious awareness of the presence of Source, orienting instead to your personality's reality of separation, limitation, and, therefore, suffering.
47 Nurturing Your Personality
Because the personality
is
such a strong part of your experience of
you need to take good care of it. This includes honoring its
needs and giving
When you
it
a healthy environment, internally
consider making changes in your
may be helpful.
it
life,
self,
by recognizing and
externally.
the following four steps
AWAKENENED PERSONALITY
205
ATTUNEMENT Creating Changes in Your Life
1.
Begin by dropping the idea of changing yourself to become a better
person. 2.
Assume
for the
moment
can have well-being right
that you are okay as you are and that you
now
without making any internal or external
changes.
From
3.
that clear space ask yourself,
"What does my
personality
need to be its healthiest?" 4.
Make
a list of the top one to five actions you can take
changes you can make
— or inner
— that will support your personality in
living in
well-being and goodness.
You may discover with supportive
that your personality needs
friends,
more
more play and enjoyment, healthier body,
more
and
let
suit
you
self-expression,
may ask you
a
new
live in a
a
creative outlets, or greater
few possibilities. For example, your
to deepen specific friendships you already have
new
friends
who
better.
body
house that
body that
home
is
more attention and care
into a
name
accomplishment or challenge,
go of others, or perhaps to persevere in finding
Or, because your give
change in your work environment,
a sense of
attention to your emotions, to
personality
love, a
more companionship
to your body. Just as
falls apart,
falls
to your personality, you
may need
to
you would not want to
you do not want to put your personality
apart from lack of care.
You may need
to choose
foods and activities that will nurture and strengthen your body so your personality can live in a clean, strong, supportive physical environment.
Proper emotional care of exercise.
self is as
Your personality may
tell
important as proper eating and
you that you need
understanding of your emotional responses.
It
may
a
deeper
also ask for
new
COMING HOME
206
options to replace old patterns that no longer serve you; a release of feelings
you have been holding back
good pat on the back
yourself; or a
for too long; greater
compassion
for
growth you
to validate the emotional
have already begun.
You may be able to get your emotional needs met through contact
whom
with friends
you trust to
live in truth
with you, through
therapist or support group, or through meaningful involvement
a
good
with your
community. Be sure to find your source for healthy emotional interaction
and growth
if
your personality requests
it.
You need open,
clear,
strong
emotional circuitry that serves you in the world.
Tending to your personality's needs the basic housekeeping required
is
for a healthy
How much housekeeping is
human being.
needed? Emotional clearing, proper diet
and exercise, and healthy rapport with family,
friends,
and community
all
nurture the personality. Yet even these health-enhancing actions are
completely
fulfilling
Spirit is the
only when accompanied by attunement to
spirit.
Source from which personality manifests. For balanced
living,
the vehicle of expression (personality) must be strongly developed,
but
must not be mistaken
it
the expressing (spirit).
things and
all
It is
for the greater consciousness that is doing
urdimited spirit that links us in unity to
beings; personality
on its
Consider the imbalances that is
ignored.
spirit
Some people who
and draw on
personality keeps
its
own cannot do this. occur when either personality
them focused
as a last resort. Their over reliance
in limitation, creating a
and attachment.
On
life
makes
it
on
of illusion,
the other hand,
spiritually oriented people recognize only the value of spirit resist the
or spirit
are strongly oriented to personality ignore
power only
materialism, judgment,
all
some
and deny or
importance of personality. This disconnection from personality
difficult for their
at the practical levels, so
needs met or
feel
expansive awareness
to.
integrate into daily
life
they often have trouble getting their material
they don't belong in the world.
AWAKENENED PERSONALITY
Personality s highest function
A weakened personality is less
is
as a vehicle for spirit.
able to tolerate the brilliant vibration
of spirit, while a healthy personality carries
personality
is
207
focused in the physical world,
your everyday view of the world.
it
its
Because your
easily.
consciousness affects
Supporting the health of your
personality increases your capacity for bringing the brilliance of spirit
through your personality into your
life.
As your healthy personality opens unlimited. In that alignment there is
is
to true
is
removed of
state of true self well-being.
with urdimited life.
Suffering
wrong and
love,
is
Such
you surrender to the
total well-being; nothing exists that
not well-being. Even a situation in your
you intense suffering
self,
all
life
that
distress
a situation
may normally
cause
when viewed from
this
becomes infused instead
compassion, and surrender to the sublime beauty of
replaced by the knowing that nothing
is
essentially
that only perfection exists. Your attachment to anything
outside yourself you had hoped
automatically dropped.
You
would
save you from suffering
are already saved, for
is
you are one with
Source.
48
Where Is Your Support? Have you found your unshakable source
of support yet?
Without
it, life
can be overwhelming and your path can seem impossibly long or rocky.
No
matter
how rough the going, you
and guided and that there
need to
know that you
power supporting you
is
a
is
my truest,
are cared for
that will not let you
down.
Ask
yourself,
You may think
Where
is
"Where
of support
support that
is
from
reliable
specific people in
support right now?"
your
life,
but go deeper.
even more constant and profound than what
another person can give you? security
most
Where
you can get from money or
is
support that goes beyond the
a satisfying career?
Where
is
support
COMING HOME
208
that
continuous, never wavering for a
is
support that
is
moment? You
are looking for
undiminished by anything that happens around you, by
what other people say or do,
or
by what you gain or lose in the world. You
are looking for Source.
Where can you self is
more is
your link to
real to you,
find Source? it,
are
the unlimited;
so look within.
it is
everywhere. True
As you allow true
self to
become
you find divine support around you and within you that
absolutely unthreatened
You
It is
by anything you may think,
bathed in the knowing
that, in fact,
feel,
or experience.
nothing truly exists but the
support of Source.
9 ATTUNEMENT Feeling the Support of Source
1.
Periodically take time to
With each
to your inner Source.
intention to connect.
sit
quietly
and
your breath take you
let
breath, gently think or speak your
You may use words such
as, "I
align
always with me" or
with the
open to the
unwavering support of Source that
is
support of Source." Let yourself
the supportive presence of Source.
feel
"I
If
your mind wanders, simply repeat your affirmation of intent. Enjoy the connection. 2.
Take
a
walk or jog and allow the movement
of your
body and the
beauty of nature to bring your awareness to your inner Source. As you
move, occasionally use a verbal affirmation, such as the ones mentioned above, to direct your intention and keep you on purpose. 3.
Talk about your inner Source of support with other people.
When you Source
are in touch
feels like
meditation.
If
and
it
it,
or
would
how you draw on
this talk is
into the experience, to
with
about what
like to be, talking its
support can be a form of
not done as idle chatter but
is
used to take you
can make the inner connection more
real.
do your sharing with people, perhaps good friends or
Choose
a spiritual
AWAKENENED PERSONALITY
who
support group,
can understand and
who
also
want
a
209
deep
experience of Source.
49 Personality as Ally
One theme
that has emerged so far in this
habitually overlooks or rejects unlimited
book
spirit.
is
that the personality
As the inner navigator
who knows how
to get us through Hmited reality, personality seems to
have
to recognize unlimitedness. Instead,
little ability
stay in control of
what
it
knows.
personality often interprets then,
is
to try to put an
familiar. In this
it
unlimitedness
is
it
to
experienced,
to
what
is
resists urdimitedness.
also another side to this story, a side in
our being that experiences separation from Source, all
is
may return
personality longs for unlirnitedness. Because personality
being in which
works hard
as a disruption. Its automatic reaction,
end to the disruption so
way, personality
Fortunately, there
When
it
it is
is
which
the aspect of
the aspect of our
suffering takes place. Yet, personality truly does not
like to suffer.
Even
if
suffering
is
a long-established, habituated pattern in your
that seems impossible to break, your personality
still
life
does not like
it.
Perhaps you were given the impression in childhood that you are most "real"
when you
way when you you are
are suffering; or that
you are
living in the
most righteous
are in pain; or that people will be kinder or less rejecting
suffering.
if
This can cause your personality to cling to suffering as a
self-affirming reality.
Still,
even underneath that ingrained pattern, your
personality longs to be free from suffering and to heal.
When
you allow unlimitedness into your conscious awareness
enough times, your personality begins
to recognize that urdimitedness
is
a
possibility. As this exposure continues, your personality becomes willing
to support your intention to live without Hmitation rather than resist.
It
COMING HOME
210
then begins to stretch, opening to the greater reality in spite of old
attachments and beliefs in limitation. Such a turning point
Look
for
those times in your
unhmitedness. For example, self's
is
well-being in your
not
You
real.
life,
when you
Who
you think any of this
life
do you think you
new
stuff will
there
resistance to
is
are experiencing
more
may pipe up and
your personality
are a fool to create your
unlimited action.
when
life
is significant.
of true
say, "This
around unlimited thinking or
anyway? And what makes
are,
work?" In those comments you are
hearing your personality's fear and need for control. Recognize the fear
and control, and give them a blessing. You do not need to it
does not help you to resist your resistance.
distress
true
them, for
to feel the
with not trusting your
self.
As you recognize "Yes, here it is again."
this discomfort
With
self.
my
long for well-being, and
I
and get to know
that acceptance you are
add, "In the midst of this distress in true
You simply need
causes. Notice the pain that creeps in
it
resist
unlimited love and well-being
fill
I
personality,
am
my body.
I
it,
you can
open enough I
say,
to also
choose to open to
willing to receive
it.
I
let
allow myself to be a conduit
for vibrant life force."
This kind of affirmation of your truest intent has tremendous power.
Remember
that regardless of whether you feel the transformation in that
moment, something important happens from that inner statement. Use whatever image or words seem the most natural for you. The form of your affirmation
is
important only to capture your intent; your intent
is
what
will activate the transformation.
50 Bridging the Split
We have talked about the split as the gap that appears to exist between limitation
and unhmitedness
many ways,
in our lives.
The
split
can be perceived in
including our difficulty in creating tangible outer conditions
or events that reflect our inner
expanded awareness. As long
as
we
AWAKENENED PERSONALITY
experience
limitation
and unlimitedness
integrated, the split will continue to
We
as
rather
separate
21
than
seem real.
have also discussed the importance of not trying to escape or
reject the split
and have looked
hidden within
it.
ways
at
to
make use
of the
power that lies
Understand, however, that you are not destined to stay
in the split forever.
The steps you take
in exploring the split are
meant
to
take you to a bridge where you can complete your crossing. Or, more
meant
accurately, those steps are
to take you into being the bridge that
brings your inner transcendent experience into outer manifestation in
your world.
The bridge can be found,
ironically, in the very aspect of
your being
that creates the split in the first place: your personality. Its experience of
separation
is
what keeps the
accepts unlimitedness into
begins to change.
It
whole rather than
its
split in existence.
As your personality
awareness and belief system,
its reality
increasingly experiences itself as part of the greater as separate.
As your
personality's reality shifts to
include this unity, the split narrows and unlimitedness begins to be
expressed in your manifestations in the outer world.
The personality takes on a new role as
it finds its
true power in being
the loyal servant to unlimited spirit.
You may
notice this shift as a lessening of the gap between your
personality's daily reality
and your occasions
of
expanded awareness. You
no longer have the sense of needing to give up expanded awareness to function in the limited world, nor do you have to give daily concerns to live
personality's
with expanded awareness. The two
become integrated within you, and your external manifestations. There
you are
up
realities
that integration starts appearing in is
more room
for
you to be
all
of
who
— everywhere!
Because personality
is
functioning in limitation,
oriented to physical reality and it
knows about
is
adept at
manifesting in the physical
world. Your frustration in the past was, in
fact,
that most of your
COMING HOME
212
seemed
manifestations
from
straight
therefore, too limiting for the part of
personality can manifest only limitation, that is
When
what
it
your
you that was growing. Your
experiences.
If it
experiences only
what it manifests in your outer life.
your personality as "real",
is
integrated with unlimited awareness and
able to outwardly manifest that unlimitedness.
identifies
it
Then you
are able to see outer change in your
it is
that reflects your inner
life
Whatever you have been seeking
transformation.
and were,
personality
—whether
satisfying
work, relationship, or another situation for expressing your true the world
This
pays
off.
adept
—
is
one area in which having a strong and healthy personality
is
The
it is
clearer
and more balanced your personality
is,
and the more
at functioning in the physical world, the better
unlimitedness into the forms
A
self in
created naturally and appropriately.
healthy
unlimitedness
personality
becomes
a
it
creates in your
strong
life.
opened
has
that
vehicle
can blend
it
its
consciousness
conveying
for
true
expanded perspective and unlimited well-being into your daily maintain balance and awareness of true world. Similarly,
it
will
to
self's
life. It
can
while taking action in the
self
be able to speak or write and consciously express
true self through that communication.
And one
of its great joys will
be
recognizing the reflection of unlimited spirit in situations that once
seemed filled with
limitation.
51
Approaching the Bridge Just before reaching the bridge of integration, there front of the gate can
want
seem almost
to cross the bridge.
like torture.
You stand on one
foot
is
You
a gate. Standing in are impatient
and then on the
and
other,
waiting for the gate to open. You can see where you want to be and can
even imagine what
it
unlimitedness. True self
unbearable.
Still,
would be is
like
to
have a
becoming more
the gate does not
let
you
pass.
real
life
that
reflects
and limitation more
AWAKENENED PERSONALITY
to
The most empowering thing you can do while you wait at the gate is be fully present right where you are. It may be tempting to mentally
project yourself across to the other side, by either wondering aren't already there or convincing yourself that
imagine the
new
can help prepare you
reality
but mentally escaping into the a
213
you
are.
why you
Letting yourself
for creating
it
in your
life,
new reality to avoid being where you are is
form of self-rejection and will only delay your progress.
All true change
You
will
is
made in a state of self-acceptance.
open the gate by accepting where you
gate,
you have tremendous power you may not even
power
to accept limitation.
may
be, "But
I
don't
This
want
may sound
As you
are.
realize.
face the
You have
the
disappointing, and your response
to accept Hmitation;
I
want
to get
away from
it!"
Consider two things.
First,
notice that the description given in
"Bridging the Split" about the fully integrated state included limitation.
But
when you become
Umitation
the bridge, you will not be caught in the
—you will be able to carry the limited and unlimited
You cannot carry what you
resist,
so to
become the bridge you must be
without resistance to
either. If
you are resisting
are not ready for the integration.
it
and
you are
still
trying to escape hmitation,
Second, recognize that accepting hmitation does not to be comfortable feel
with
it.
together.
You can accept
yourself and
mean you have still
not always
comfortable with yourself. You can accept fear and not necessarily be
comfortable with situations where you are
afraid. So,
hmitation and not be entirely comfortable with
about acceptance, however,
is
it.
you can accept
What
is
significant
that as you witness your discomfort, you
sense that at your core you are in well-being. Even
if
your emotions and
your nervous system seem to be struggling with the situation, your inner witness
is
distinction
in well-being is
important.
and you recognize
it
as the greater power. This
COMING HOME
214
The willingness
to carry the paradox
of well-being within distress
is
the
ability to hold power.
If
you are
still
facing the gate, you are
hold power and to carry
it
into your
you will definitely need this that your greater self has
ready for
it
life.
still
After you
ability, so it is
you stand on
developing your ability to
move through
the gate,
with compassionate wisdom
this side of the gate until
you are
to open.
The best practice
for carrying
power
to give yourself extended
is
periods of true well-being and connection with Source. That
is
the
power
that will ultimately be streaming through your being into your
uniting you with the infinite possibilities you
life,
now hold in your heart.
52 Carrying Power
Power comes from and
always
unlimitedness
your
life.
consciously
have is all
With
been. that
Sustained really
conscious
While you stand
embody
true well-being regardless of
power your system
and greater well-being. As you choose to all
thought,
does.
strange that your
Your body's
circuitry has
been
self,
and
all
is
learning
align
situations,
with
you are
self.
body needs
personality's experience of limitation.
true
and
all feeling,
teaching your body about the presence of true
it
your
Nothing can separate you from Source.
at the gate gathering
Source in the midst of
may seem
of
a situation that is comfortable or uncomfortable,
"positive" or "negative".
It
awareness
needed to make a dramatic difference in
that change, you
whether you are in
to carry greater
is
being urdimited. You are unlimited already
to learn this presence, but
laid out largely according to
your
As you become more aligned with
as the well-being of Source begins to
fill
more
of your
physical body, your body's pathways of consciousness are repatterned.
It
A WAKENENED PERSONALITY
is
as
though the conduits once were meant
215
to hold a smaller reality,
and
now they are expanding to carry an unlimited one. Imagine that even the tissues of your body are being taught
something new. Ever}
7
cell
has programmed within
it
not only
its
physical
function, but also an ability to experience consciousness. Each cell in
your body has some experience of the consciousness of the whole
organism that you
are.
cells are, in a sense,
As the inner
circuitry
reprogrammed with
therefore, a greater vitality.
The physical
grows
in unlimitedness, the
a greater consciousness and,
with more
tissues are infused
vibrant well-being and potential for a healthier, extended
life.
53 Discharging Excess Energy
It
can be uncomfortable to increase well-being in your body
circuits are not
used to
it.
It
may
if
your
take time for the inner adjustments to
occur that will establish equilibrium around the increase of vibrancy you carry. If
being so highly charged
body may to
do
the
feel
something you are not used
the impulse to discharge some of the energy.
this; after
full
is
to,
your
It is all
right
your body has received the increased charge,
imprint as the model for expanding
its
it
will use
energetic circuitry. That
imprint will remain and will be used by your body long after you discharge the energy that feels like excess.
How you
release this energy
some conscious list
is
important and requires your making
choices. Let's explore
of appropriate outlets
exercise that
is
is
some
possibilities.
At the top of the
physical exercise. Of course,
beneficial to your
body and
its
condition,
it
should be
and preferably
something you enjoy doing. In exercise you are discharging a buildup of vibrant to your
life
force through an activity that
body and,
therefore, to
is
also physically strengthening
your personality.
It
supports your total
well-being and directly increases your ability to carry power in the future.
What if you do
not wish to exercise or you have a physical condition
that does not permit
it?
Life is unlimited;
you always have an
alternative.
COMING HOME
216
Your imagination
a
is
good resource. Imagining
is
easy and can be done
along with or instead of physical exercise. For example,
when you feel the
buildup of intense vibration and the need for discharge, take
five to
twenty minutes for the following inner process.
ATTUNEMENT Discharging Excess Energy
Imagine your body bathed from head to toe in
1.
tissues receive this vitality as spiritual nutrients, life.
.
.
vitality.
and your
cells
.
Your
.
.
glow with
.
2.
As your body
how much
energy
it
energized by this
is
needs to keep and
knows
vitality, it intuitively
how much
it
needs to
release.
Imagine that your body releases the right amount through the pores of your skin. Like light shining through a porous cloth, this extra vitality illuminates the space around you 3.
To
close,
spend
at least
and is then released into your life
one minute allowing your body to
feel a
comfortable sense of well-being and ease
9 Feel free to experiment with different images. Sometimes you find that the energy
may
wants to leave through certain areas of your body, or
you may be inclined to breathe the energy out with each exhale.
When
excess energy
is
released,
anything being wrong with vitality
from Source.
It
it.
it is
There
is
not "gotten rid of" because of
nothing wrong with
would not have been within you
it;
it
to begin with
if it
did not have something good to give you. As you release this energy
goes to
your
life,
to give all
work
it
how
for you. It
knows, by
to guide you,
its
own
intelligence,
and what to manifest
where
is
it
to go in
—without your having
any further thought! Just releasing your excess energy sets this
in motion.
A WAKENENED PERSONALITY
21
Be creative finding other ways of energetic discharge that work
A
you.
hot bath
may
walk
help, a quiet
in the
imagining you are running through the surf
woods, or
at the beach.
minutes
five
Housecleaning,
gardening, or even reading the funnies can be good. Phoning a friend
understands your process and giving a 'Vibrancy report"
way to feel
the energy and discharge
Recognizing when you need consciously choosing a falling into a pattern of
rather than strengthens
discomfort you
feel
is
through talking about
to
self -nurturing
who
an excellent it.
discharge excess vibrancy and
way
to
do
it
can stop you from
unconscious behavior that weakens your system it.
When
excess energy
is
not discharged, any
from increased vitality may prompt you automatically
and unconsciously to numb,
You may do
it
for
distract, or
by drinking
this
subdue yourself.
coffee, over- or under-eating,
snacking
on sugar} foods, over- or under-exercising, escaping into mental 7
watching TV, surfing the internet, over-focusing on
activity,
a relationship, using
drugs or alcohol, or turning to other types of addictive or potentially
self-
destructive behavior.
So as you open to all
new levels
of vibrancy,
be aware of whether
it is at
uncomfortable for you. Take responsibility for creating rituals that
allow you to receive vibrant well-being, to direct
energy into your
life.
This
is
it,
and to
vibrancy management and
is
release excess
your secret for
carrying power.
54
Moving Through the Gate Your acceptance of limitation and gate;
familiarity
with well-being open the
then your ability to identify with the unlimited will move you
through
it.
You cannot
force or control your
movement through the
gate
any more than you could have forced the gate open or could have flung yourself across the
split.
Making the
limitation in your thoughts
unlimited
is
shift
from identifying with the
and experiences to identifying with the
what propels you forward.
COMING HOME
218
Why is You
necessary to accept limitation to stop identifying with
it
with everything you
identify
Umitation, you limitation
you
must stop
resisting
experience
still
it.
identifying with
When you do stop identifying with
but
it,
To stop
resist.
is
no longer
a barrier for you. It
becomes just another of life's explorations. You no longer hold onto it
no longer stops you from being and expressing who you truly
it
you to
that allows
your true
For example,
self,
work
If
you have been struggling to find work
will manifest.
relationship that supports
life
world from the expanded awareness of
relate to the
that
find your partner.
if
and
are.
Moving through the gate and becoming the bridge changes your in tangible ways.
it?
you in being
you have longed
you have been looking
If
all
of
for outer
who you
truly are,
abundance that
for a
you will
reflects the
abundance and well-being that has begun to grow within you, you will find that, too.
The
list
of possibilities
is
endless.
What manifests for you in
the world
comes directly from your sense of self
To the degree you of
self.
identify
with Umitation, you carry
it
in your sense
Therefore, that limitation manifests into your world.
identify less
with
limitation,
your outer manifestations
Umitation. Similarly, as you identify
As you
reflect
less
more with unlimitedness, you carry
unUmitedness in your sense of seU and that unUmitedness manifests. You then Uve with more situations that recognizably reflect unUmited being
and support your expanded awareness.
Understand that identifying with unlimitedness or Umitation the same as ^identifying with
what
is
"positive" or "negative". It
is
not
is
the
limited aspect of the personaUty that thinks in terms of "positive" and "negative".
To guide you through
that you should think
experiences
if
more
that reality, personaUty
may
teU you
positive thoughts or relate only to positive
you want to Uve in a positive world.
The hidden,
self-defeating
perceived as negative
is
message in
this
behef
is
that anything
potentiaUy dangerous. That creates a need to
avoid, deny, or resist the negative
by continuaUy turning
to the positive
A WAKENENED PERSONALITY
which
actually keeps
frame of reference.
If
you identified with the negative because
you are content to remain
of Umitation, avoiding negativity
to
expand your awareness of
and
Positive
is
your
it is
yourself, others,
your
personality's level
may seem appropriate. But if you
narrow confines of identification with recognize that nothing
at
219
intend
and the world beyond the
limitation,
you will need to
innately positive or negative.
negative
simply
are
personality's
translation
of
comfortable and uncomfortable, trusted and not trusted. Yet Source, the vitality of life
and
and
—
beings
all
essence
level,
brilliance of all creation, is the core energy of
as well as
how
all
can anything be innately negative? With unlimited as the essence energy that everything,
including your pleasant and unpleasant experiences, is
things
thoughts, feelings, and situations. At that
and unwavering well-being
love
all
is
made
—where
of
there true negativity?
You can afford
It
can be helpful to notice
to be all embracing.
when something seems
pleasant or
unpleasant to you, comfortable or uncomfortable, safe or unsafe,
life
enhancing or depleting. Use that information to make your choices. That is
part of honoring your personality's needs and
is at
times necessary for
protecting yourself or supporting your emotional and physical health. Yet,
you work against your movement into greater awareness
or resist
all
thoughts, feelings, and
perceives as negative. "negativity"
It
may
life
if
you
reject
situations that your personality
serve you to look
and connect with Source, which
beyond the discomfort and
is at
the core of all of it.
9 MEDITATION Moving Through the Gate
1.
little
Breathe gently and
deeper into your true
easily, self
allowing each breath to take you just a
COMING HOME
220
As your breath takes you
2.
true
self, it is
is
do anything to make
already within you, no matter
gently and easily takes you to
As you move into your true ...
self
As you stand in front of the
To move through the
4.
the midst of arise.
.
.
.
If
—
it's
—may be very
you
deeper into
You do not need to it
try to
stronger. Unlimited well-
how subtle it feels, and your breath
will be passing
is
in this well-being.
and into the well-being, you find the gate.
gate, it
opens for you
draw on Source energy
gate,
(true self) in
your thoughts, emotions, and physical sensations as they
That energy
well-being 5.
all
little
it
The gate through which you
3.
deeper and a
you into well-being
also taking
create this well-being or
being
a little
feel
vibrant
subtle,
life,
but
unconditional love, and urdimited
it is real.
Let yourself enjoy
any excess energy in your system,
let it
it.
be released
through the pores of your skin into the world 6.
To
close, let
Then
relaxation.
your body be bathed with a feeling of comfort and
stretch
and open your
eyes.
55
The Nothing After
making the
shift to a
new
you may be
level of consciousness,
surprised to find yourself feeling disoriented, as though you can't see the terrain
and get your bearings. You may think, "This
would
be."
Of course
it isn't
—you had imagined
conscious awareness, which
was more
your greater potential, which
is
a
limited.
it
isn't
what I thought it
from your old
You have stepped
may be facing the
People usually think the Nothing means something
when
I
into
more subtle realm. Until your conscious
awareness acclimates to this subtlety, you
example,
level of
guide people into true
self,
Nothing.
is
wrong. For
they sometimes say
disappointedly, "I'm not getting anything. There's nothing there." That
is
AWAKENENED PERSONALITY
music to
my
up
confirms they are dipping deeper into their true
ears. It
than they are used
Their impulse
to.
Hover
at the
into true
is
and give
to stay right there. Just
hang
self,
the
more subtle the experience.
matter your current level of conscious awareness, the Nothing
always the next level deeper is
to reject the experience
self
edge of the Nothing. Be gently curious and wait.
The deeper you go
No
is
or do something else. But the thing to do
out. Be.
221
more subtle than you
awareness
think nothing
new
used to perceiving. As long
subtlety,
Yet,
is there!
hover in the Nothing, perceive
reality there, including all sensations,
it
it
you calmly
if
let
room into
lit
what
happen
will
Within
a
if
a
you stand
and begin to
so dimly
that
this. If
seems completely dark,
it
of
few minutes you will begin to make out shapes of the
exactly
with the couch and
large chairs.
it.
A
Nothing. As you patiently wait
it
willing to value experience so subtle that at
may
will be subtle.
first
a stronger sensation.
Or microscopic
you are not even sure
self-love
it
it
in the Nothing, the
in your expectation of
may waft
your chest that you previously would have thought
The longer you wait
You must be
notice a feeling of calm and well-being so
you would have overlooked
tiny that previously
new subtlety
deeper reality based in greater love, wisdom
well-being will appear. But
For example, you
The longer
room will become.
how it works with the
and begin to perceive self
you step from
you just stand there awhile? Your eyes will adapt,
there, the clearer the
is
lit
do
to
in the Nothing, your conscious awareness will adjust to the
is real.
will
your conscious awareness
will automatically acclimate
room
furniture, perhaps starting
and true
It
what previously it could not. That is how awareness expands.
a brightly
This
your conscious
will not perceive deeper reality.
You already trust your physical perception
course.
as
oriented to the previous, denser level and hasn't yet
is still
acclimated to the
are
— and
is
more
it
so gently through
didn't count.
will be
revealed— and
The more frequently you return
to the
Nothing, the easier and more natural the transition will become.
With
the more real
each
visit to
it
will
become
to you.
the Nothing your conscious awareness will learn to expand.
COMING HOME
222
9 MEDITATION Being in the Nothing
1.
Breathe gently and little
2.
deeper into your true
Assume
allowing each breath to take you just a self
that each breath will continue taking you a
into true 3.
easily,
As you
self,
deeper
little
even when you are not thinking of it.
breathe, be gently curious about finding a place in your
body where you
feel nothing. If tensions or
you
emotions or notice a flurry of thoughts, do not
feel specific
push them away. Just
what
interests
let
aches
call to
you, or
them be in the background; they
you right now. Be gently drawn to
a place
are not
where
there seems to be nothing happening. 4.
Let your awareness hover at that place of no sensation as you breathe.
5.
If
sensations arise in that place, do not push
them be
in the background; they are not
now. Continue
letting
in your body, even 6.
When
them away. Just
what
interests
let
you right
your awareness be drawn to the Nothing
if it's
in a
new place, and gently hover.
you become comfortable with the Nothing, add
this
element: Gently look for the tiniest, most microscopic well-being
you can 7.
If
find,
and let your awareness hover in it.
that well-being
tiniest,
most microscopic well-being you can
awareness hover in 8.
To
grows or changes, again gently look
close, let
relaxation.
it.
.
.
find,
and
for the let
your
and so on
your body be bathed with a feeling of comfort and
Then
stretch,
open your
9
eyes,
and move slowly.
AWAKENENED PERSONALITY
223
LOUISA "The Nothing
everything," answered Louisa
is
most important true
self lesson.
seems like nothing
where
is
who
I
darkness and nothingness turns out to be
"How
did you discover that?"
I
and triumphs
really am.
asked to hear her
What
in our lives that
we had I
appears to be
all potential."
asked, wondering
the answer. Friends for twenty years, struggles
I
"Going into the space in myself that
find
I
when
was
why
I
shared so
didn't
know
many
of the
surprised not to
remember
this spiritual milestone of hers.
"In the late eighties, least
I
thought
settling in,
nothing
would
I
there,'
My
nothing?'
experiences appearing.
I
was
it
I
was having
I
a
a problem," she began.
find myself facing a big hole of darkness. There's
would
think,
'What do
impulse was to reject
was used
I
was
my meditations — or at "After closing my eyes and
problem in
it
I
do with
this big hole of
and search
dark
for the uplifting
to in meditation, but the dark hole kept
sure something
was wrong.
I
hadn't started meditation
to find darkness!"
No wonder I didn't recollect this story; Louisa and I had only begun to get to know each other then. Neither of us had yet recognized what good friends we would become or how long lasting our friendship would be.
"What kind of meditation were you doing back then?" "I
had learned
a meditation practice of closing
saying, 'Relax, relax, relax,'
and then continuing
wonderful. Not only did
feel
uplifted, light, buoyant,
money, relationships Daily struggle
more real
fell
I
and deeply
I
felt
eyes, silently
to sit quietly.
It
at ease. less
My
daily concerns
important to
expanded, and
my
I
was felt
—work,
my well-being.
greater being
became
to me.
"Then, one day
it
changed. The darkness and nothingness started
appearing. Almost as soon as couldn't see I
my
inquired.
relaxed during the meditation,
—faded, becoming
away.
I
I
closed
beyond it or get past
thought, 'where
is it?'
I
it.
T
my eyes it was right in front of me.
I
know there's more to me than this,'
assumed something was wrong
—perhaps
I
was
COMING HOME
224
encountering a block in myself. For weeks, every time
meditated
I
was
I
confronted with the same dark, empty nothingness.
went
"I
to one of your talks
and asked you about
In your true self
it.
channeling, you told me, 'Go into that darkness and emptiness.
Nothing
empty. Everything
isn't really
The universe
is
is there.
was
a relief to
I
me.
Tm not
and
I
itself to
The Nothing.
as
I
started
doing anything wrong. I'm supposed to be here with is
just
what
it
my mind by
asking,
me now; I need to
looks like to
'What
What else is coming to me here?'
awareness flowed through me, showing expansive
I
I
else is here that
thought of the
whooshed
everything started moving. Stars
of them.
me
level of
next meditation the dark hole of nothingness appeared again,
opened
noticed?
new
it.'
my
"In
there yet. Understanding
decided then and there to open to the
I
the nothingness. Darkness
move into
realized that the darkness wasn't
I
what was
just wasn't seeing
awareness that was presenting believing,
stars are there.
there for you.'
"At that point everything changed. really nothing;
Even the
The
by,
I
stars,
haven't
and then
and new ideas and
me more of my true
self
and how
am in my being. Then I was moving with the stars; I was part
Whatever they were,
had the same
I
stuff in
me.
I
had
all
potential.
my life to experience that I really am part of the universe. am not separate from it. I am not a stranger in it after all. I am part of the "It
I
changed
whole." u
Did you used to
feel separate?"
I
asked.
"Oh, yes, definitely. For as long as didn't really belong here, in this world,
Nothing,
I
used to look out
think, There's a
world out
can remember
I
on
my window there,
I
earth. Before
of
it.'
felt
that
I
opening to The hillside
and
It felt sad,
but
on the
at the trees
and I'm not part
had
normal.
"Then one day, meditations, usual,
I
I
felt
I
had started moving
was looking out my window
but this time
separate,
after
I
it felt
was
I
felt
The Nothing
at the trees
different. Instead of
part of them.
into
looking
connected.
It
on the
at
in
my
hillside, as
them and
made me
feeling
stop and
AWAKENENED PERSONALITY
Tm
think,
never
way
felt this
myself and belief
looking out at the world, and before.
had
shift
a
changed
I've really
how
I've
perceive
I
me
universe wants
can
feel it in
like
I
shifted.
profound
forward a knowing that here.
the cells of
I
effect
really do
Now, 20
on
my
life.
belong here,
years later,
Because of
am
I
I still
my body. I know that
I'll
a part of
it, I
life,
carried
and the
carry that knowing;
I
never go back to feeling
don't belong in this world."
"How
did that knowing stay with you?"
was
over the years that Louisa
whenever the
I
asked in awe.
had noticed
I
back in touch with true
facile at getting
stresses of life pulled her off track. "Did
anything to keep renewing the knowing, or did its
belong here.
I
my place in the world — and my place in the universe.' My old
about not belonging had
"That
self
Wow,
feel that
I
225
it
just stay
you do
with you on
own?" "Practice, practice, practice! I've practiced staying in touch
choice.
My
expansiveness,
my
by
it,
connection with the universe, and
belonging in the world have stayed real to integrating
with
my
me because I've made a point of
them into my daily life. I practiced a lot!"
"How did you do that?" I asked. "First,
I
continued to meditate.
experience in
my
meditations
a
was not
and important
reality, a legitimate
normal part of my life here on
recognized that the expansive
I
just an 'altered state.' It
reality.
earth,
I
chose to accept
expansive experience from that meditation into
seemed
I
had accepted
my
a
as a reality,
and to value it.
"Second, at the end of every meditation,
awhile, although
it
was
I
chose to integrate
my
daily awareness. For
expansive experience as a
like a separate reality that didn't
my
connect with
my
reality, it
daily reality
being at work, talking with people, driving, shopping, fixing dinner, and
soon. "So
I
added
a third step:
made
a point of
invite
it
my
into
my
meditation.
At various times during
pausing to remember day. Especially helpful
To me,
it
represented
my
my daily activities,
was the image
my
I
expansive experience and to of the stars from
being part of the unlimited
COMING HOME
226
Remembering the
universe and, simultaneously, belonging in this world. stars
brought
my true self into my personality in an instant.
"Cultivating the integration took a lot of practice, and doing like exercise
worth
my
like
Because
it.
My
to blend.
and
—
I
was
exercising
my
awareness muscles. But
it felt
it
was
my two worlds started which was my true self,
kept repeating those exercises,
I
expansive state from meditation,
daily awareness,
my
which was
began integrating.
personality,
That integration has continued over the years."
"Was
this all
tangible, too?"
I
done with your awareness, or did you do something
asked.
got creative about giving myself tangible reminders so
"I
wouldn't
I
my day and forget, especially at work where distractions were greatest. Some days I would put a short, inspiring quote on my desk and read it every couple of hours. Reading the quote would trigger my get caught
up
in
expanded awareness in the midst of the hubbub of work. Other days
I
my desk to remind my subconscious, whenever I looked in that direction, that my true self had come to work with me. Or I would put a special, little stone in my pocket when I got dressed in the morning. During the day I would notice it whenever I put my hand in my would
light a candle
pocket, or sometimes
on
I
would just remember it was
remind me to take a breath and open to "Over the years,
I've
also
opportunities for integrating
times
my true self.
talking. This is fabulous.
"Okay. Let's
Money, or
life
as
my true self and personality. Those were the
Give
see...oh, yes,
my lack of it,
because
belong.
I
I
was done with her
story. "Hey,
money and
thinking of
like
relationship.
The
real biggies.
an insurmountable obstacle to
money made me
'I
can't
don't have money. I'm not like everybody
else.
don't deserve to be here.'
seemed to me that everybody I
feel,
Not having money made me
not entitled to goodness, and different from everybody
engaged way, but
keep
me some examples," I told her.
used to seem
my happiness. Back then,
"It
my
needed it most, anyway."
I
life
and that would
used the big challenges in
Louisa stopped, thinking she
of
there,
else
was
be part I
feel
don't
weak,
else.
able to live
life
in a fully
could not. Everybody else was in a big, colorful
AWAKENENED PERSONALITY
parade, complete with bands, balloons and
down
the street, but
couldn't be in
I
it. I
its
way
the curb watching
it all
floats,
was on
227
trumpeting
goby.
had been
"I
living
with that perspective
for so long that
had no
I
how it was affecting me until my therapist pointed it out. She helped me to notice how I felt about myself and money — and then she helped me to realize that those limiting beliefs weren't true. That got me jump started. "From there, I started applying my spiritual 'exercises' to money. awareness of
When
I
or
thought of money,
meditation.
because
it
When
made
I
remembering the
a point of
from
the old feelings of unworthiness and not belonging
had money struggles sneaked back
I
stars
in, I
did the exercise again:
taking a few breaths and remembering the stars and
my
expansiveness.
Or sometimes I looked out the window for 10 seconds and remembered, T am
a part of things.'
When I caught myself having that feeling of being on
the curb as everybody
That's not
else's
parade passed by me,
and the
true,'
I
reminded myself,
just
feeling lost its power.
Practice, practice,
practice!"
"And the
exercises helped?"
I
asked.
"Doing those exercises made a world of difference!
come over me.
lightness
My
old associations with
shame, not deserving, and not belonging
money
— transformed
belonging, being part of the universe, and being part of
myself as an integral (and wanted!) part of that
I
deserved
"I
made
all
this integration of true self into
into
me from
the universe
"In retrospect, feel
And
movement and flow
rather than separates is full, like
life.
made me
felt
—
a
new
feelings of
to feelings of
Experiencing
increasingly feel
goodness, including money.
in tiny steps over the years.
part of the
life
I
it's
I'm so glad
I
my personality's experience did it! Now that feel I'm a
of the universe,
it,
I
and that money connects
my whole life moves
and flows.
My life
is full.
clear that feeling a part of the universe
more supported, and
as
I
my thoughts and feelings
made me
integrated that feeling of universal support
about money,
my finances grew to
support
COMING HOME
228
me
"And relationship?" years, so
I
was
income
my finances are balanced, and I feel comfortable."
These days
increased.
my
world. Career opportunities improved, and
this
in
I
asked.
We had hashed over our relationships for
curious to hear her perspective now.
"The tough thing for
me
in relationship
was
that
I
would
easily lose
my sense of self, my rootedness in who I am. I would adapt to the man too much, without even knowing it, until I lost my self-esteem and selfconfidence. His wants and needs would become more important than my own. At that point it would be hard for me to get my authentic self back because
felt small, like
I
I
didn't deserve
much, and reclaiming myself felt
trudging upstream, against the current of the man's expectations of
like
me.
was
"This
with
especially true
was very overpowering.
made the commitment exercise in
which
going to be
who
grounded and balanced.
to be
am.
Who
as
you know,
decided to take a stand for myself.
I
Tm
said to myself,
I
I
Finally
my last boyfriend, who, I
I
created a mental
going to stand
my
ground. I'm
am is good. It does not matter what he or how much he rants and raves at me. I will I
how he criticizes me, remain loyal to my authentic self.' thinks,
"By that time,
My
self.
is
I
called
my
strong experience of true
on that expanded awareness to help me in
reminded me,
in me.
I
am the
am wanted was
already had developed
expanded awareness in meditation had begun to help me with
money, so too. It
I
as a
here.'
relationship,
am who I am. I am in the universe, and the universe
l
I
stars,
and the
stars are me.
Remembering
whole being. Because
I
belong in this world, and
that truth gave
of
it, I
me
who
I
flaws,
I
confidence in
realized that even
if I
had
I
was much more than my flaws. "It
wasn't always easy, but
relationship,
expressing more of
backlashes from
and
my
my boyfriend,
therapist for help
Finally he
and
I
so
I
my wants
remembering
I
got
many
it
who
I
became
was and what clear that
I
wanted.
he wanted a
me rather than the real me. It was painful for we were going to be good together someday,
'lesser'
to lose the fantasy that
and needs.
in the
turned to the support of good friends
broke up because
relationship with the
me
became increasingly authentic
I
AWAKENENED PERSONALITY
but
it
that
I
was
am
better to find out the truth and
move
on. Since then,
Tm not in a relationship right now, but as that
it
genuinely
belonging, and love of life reflect
me.
integrating
be
who
that
is
I
It all
reflects I
feel,
me.
plus
The
look at
I
me
self esteem.
my life,
well-being,
I
can
tell
contentment,
my work and house, all feel like they
has come as a direct result of moving into The Nothing,
my expanded
awareness into
authentically am,
my daily life,
and understanding
that
allowing myself to
am
I
a reflection of all
true in the universe.
"I still
when
knowing
as big, expansive, and powerful as the universe has kept
from losing myself to another person or handing over my
you
229
I
have struggles sometimes, and
need them.
I
know
expanded awareness into profound contentment."
this for sure:
my
life
I
do
My
my
spiritual 'exercises'
integration of true
has brought
self's
me abundance and
PartX
9
PLANETARY SURVIVAL Facing Challenge in the
World
56
Deepening Your Awareness Your breath has the
moment you
intelligence;
ask
it to.
it
can guide your awareness into true
You can draw on
this intelligence right
self
now.
For the next few moments, notice your breathing and imagine that you are allowing each breath to take
you into true
self.
Only
a slight
change
is
necessary; you are closer to true self than you think. Let the next breath
take you just a .
little
And the next breath
deeper
a little
deeper
still.
.
And the next breath
When you and return to of your
life.
start
it
your day with a few minutes of presence in true
self
periodically as the day progresses, you change the quality
You operate from
a
new inner depth
and, therefore, relate to a
deeper level of everyone and everything around you. At the end of the day,
even though you
may have gone through
the normal course of events and
have had your usual responses, something will be
different.
new imprint on you and, whether you you will have had a new effect on people. will have left a
The world
noticed
it
or not,
Living from even a slightly deeper place within yourself
expands your perceptions oftheworld aroundyou
and enrichesyour interactions with other people
This does not necessarily
mean
that you will be calm or
time, that people will
do what you want them to
bother you anymore.
It
will
remains
become more constant
circumstances.
all
It is
the quality of your
the
do, or that nothing will
does not even mean that the events in your
will occur any differently.
You
happy
life
life
that will transform.
fully present, closer to a state of well-being that
regardless
of
any
You will become more
fluctuations
in
centered in true
self.
emotions
This transformation matters because you are part of a planetary
or
shift
in consciousness, a consistent worldwide progression into deeper, more
expansive levels of
self.
The world you experience
in ten or
will be very different from the one you experience today.
twenty years
You
are part of
COMING HOME
234
this world, intimately
you develop in your
connected to everyone in life
the greater awareness
it;
your personal contribution to planetary
is
growth.
57
and the One Mind
Survival
In spite of the spiritual transformation taking place, thinking
the world
may be
like in ten or
twenty years can be disquieting. The
on the planet include widespread problems
current crises
environment, economic instability, societal violence, health,
human
rights,
Clearly the path
expect
it
and the dangers
of atomic
are following needs
relating to the
w ars, r
starvation,
power and weaponry.
some major
work
repair
if
we
to take us into a healthy future.
Many fear
we
about what
who are spiritually focused relate to these crises with "We must hurry and evolve or we will not survive!" This is
people
and panic.
a contradiction: belief in the
power
of spiritual evolution
survival. Spiritual evolution is a given; there is
not happen or that
it
will not
no need to
and
fear for
fear that
it
happen fast enough.
The human specks and mil survive and
the planet
thrive.
Throughout human existence, people have always had reasons concerned for their
survival.
What makes
particularly significant is that they are
personal concerns ("Will
will
my
current
survival
no longer limited to
self/family/country
survive?"),
to
be
issues
individual,
but
now
extend to fears and deep caring about the condition of the entire planet. This
is
logical
on that great
we know we now have the power to destroy life And along with the development of this destructive
because
a scale.
power have come the tangible proof that
we
iconic photos of planet Earth taken from space, are
one population sharing one home, undeniably
interconnected and interdependent.
PLANETARY SURVIVAL
The
result of the recognition of our united existence
vulnerability
is
world now
deeper
with
is at
own
their personal issues of survival. Because survival
stake,
it is
necessary for
all
people to become aware
on the planetary whole. And from there
of their effect
and our united
that individuals can no longer struggle solely on their
in an isolated way, of the
235
it
must go
a step
still.
The group mind, the consciousness shared by
all
beings on earth,
must become real
back
Let's step
moment and review
for a
perspective. Unlimited love
material for
all
As the Source real. It is also its
is
all
what
from the broader
this
the essence of our being.
forms of life and
of
to us.
all
events that occur everywhere on earth.
creation and existence, unlimited love is
most enduring;
expression can be changed
the building
It is
it
is
what
is
most
cannot be destroyed. The forms of
— from water to steam,
fire to
smoke, a sky
scraper to rubble, a fetus to a newborn, one thought or emotion to
another
—but the unhmited love and creative intelligence of \ibrant
force cannot be harmed.
It
knows
only joy, the joy of being.
Consider that unlimited Source does not fear for it
recognizes
all
vibrant
life
It
never forgets that what
is
most
Because
its love, it is
not
real is the love
and
force at the core of everything.
Being fully aware of expression of
itself,
itself called "the
limited view of
being of unlimited
unlimited Source notices that the
human
personality" believes in fear
and
a
Yet the personality longs to evolve beyond the
life.
constraints and suffering of
assistance
its survival.
things as creative manifestations of
afraid of anything.
life
life,
its
limited reality into the expansive well-
and this creates
a pull
on Source to
assist. Source's
comes through events that allow the personality
to
grow on
its
own terms, involving issues the personality recognizes as real. The
personality's
experiences itself
itself as
most fundamental concern
more
more than anything.
real It
than unlimited
wants
is its survival.
spirit, it fears
to preserve its
way
Because
it
the loss of
of organizing the
COMING HOME
236
world around
and
itself,
is
resistant to
any drastic change. This means
that survival issues get the personality's full attention the
moment
they
arise.
With support from
the greater consciousness of Source,
we
all
have
created the planetary crises to assist the personality in recognizing the
oneness
we
all
share.
Our
physical survival
now depends on
the world's
people coming together with one mind, one intent, one purpose: to find values
and actions that nurture the earth and its
residents.
— and
Your greatest personal contribution to the survival the planet can be share with
all
made by becoming aware
beings on the planet. There
with others,
spiritually to unite
by existing you are naturally emanating from Source; beings.
of the connection
in
for that
is
thrival
— of
you already
nothing you have to do
union has already occurred; just
One mind. One mind is
a quality of spirit
the thought and creativity shared by
it is
What now matters most is
all
directing your conscious awareness to
this connection.
Understand that being in One mind does not mean that everyone thinks the same thoughts; intellect.
Nor does
it
continue to be the
mean
full
it is
not a mass joining of the personality's
that you lose any of your autonomy.
individual you have always been.
You
will
One mind
is
simply an interconnectedness in spirit that transcends the personality's experience of separation and limitation.
One mind is
the spiritual intelligence
shared by
As you become aware
of your participation in
the door for expansive thought to
where
it
all beings.
come
One mind, you open
into your conscious daily
life
can be put to practical use. You are essentially reaching into a
realm in which
all
move through you
possibilities are held in "potential", inviting
into "real
life".
them
to
Naturally, this broadens the range of
information and creative impulse you draw from as you create your
and make your contribution to planetary transformation.
life
PLANETARY SURVIVAL
237
This expansion will come as you regularly witness your unity with beings. at the
You can practice this witnessing through meditations
end of
like the
by simply imagining unity from time
this chapter or
during the day. As your natural place in
One mind becomes
all
one
to time
real to you,
your personality will be able to receive and use the greater perspective
and
creativity that is shared in unity. This connection will bring a subtle,
new power to your thoughts, ideas, and actions.
In
One mind, you are sharing
a limitless resource of thought
with
One mind draws from limited
to,
it.
is
beings on the planet.
a collective pool of thought,
This resource
not
is
all
In other words,
ideas, yet
it is
One mind
is
and pulling out
a
human
infinitely
which means that everyone of specific ideas so intellect. It is
it is
not
pure thought.
more than ideas.
not a network through which everyone
exchanges ideas. Getting an idea reservoir
made up
or even influenced by, the
the source of
It is
all
is
not a matter of reaching into this
thought that suits you. Instead, the vibrant
energy of unlimited thought always moves through you. Your brain translates the energy of pure thought into your personal thoughts, doing
so according to your sense of reality.
The
comes from One mind: your connection with
You may know other people whose
essence all
energy of those ideas
beings and
all possibility.
ideas are similar to yours. There
always groups of people translating the unLimited vibration of
are
thought in similar ways. Yet each idea shared by the group
still
the personal identity of each individual. The idea
not any more
than
real
idea
—
is
that.
What
is real
—before,
itself is
during, and after the
begins in
life
of the
the vibrant energy of urdimited thought.
This relates directly to the transition of the planetary consciousness.
Your contact with true
self will
attune your awareness to a more refined
vibration, a different frequency than
you identify with now.
It
will enable
your brain to interpret the energy patterns of pure thought in ways that cannot presently do. You will translate thought into ideas
it
that, at this
COMING HOME
238
moment, seem beyond you because you
are not yet consciously connected
with true self at such a deep level.
The profound ideas that
come from
will
will contribute to the thrival of the planet
a refinement in the translation of unlimited thought into
As you move deeper into true
ideas.
process of evolution. true self
The deepening
and One mind
self in
your daily
life,
you
assist this
with
of your conscious connection
will increase your ability to hold awareness at a
more refined vibrational frequency. And the energy patterning of your
new life
sense of self will manifest as
more expansive thoughts,
and
actions,
experiences.
Recognize the contribution this allows you to make to the world. Perhaps your
way
of
working
for a
more harmonious planet
even centers on, political activity or making changes in your
includes, or lifestyle.
Yet
even in the midst of your life-enhancing practical action, the most
powerful thing you can do
is
to continue to contact deeper levels of
self.
This will give your actions greater effect and will provide you with the necessary attunement to bring creative,
new solutions to the world.
MEDITATION The One Mind
1.
As you breathe, imagine that each breath has
intelligence that 2.
As your breath keeps breathing you deeper
imagination
One mind of
life
show you your connection
of all beings
on the planet
natural
there.
into true
self, let
to the group consciousness
The One mind
is
your
— the
a vibrant pulse
that carries unlimited love and unlimited thought directly to you.
3.
thought ideas
knows your true self and gently takes you
a
Notice that this vibrant essence of unlimited love and unlimited is
greater than the personal you, yet your
and perceptions that create your experience
mind
of the
translates
world
it
into
PLANETARY SURVIVAL
The energy
239
moves through your being and is then released to become unlimited, unformed thought once more Continue 4.
to witness the
of thought
One mind
as
it
enters you,
then flows on to become the unlimited
it
translated into your world,
One mind again
As you continue receiving the One mind,
5.
love
is
circulates through you.
With each
the joy of having this subtle love
notice the unhmited
breath, allow your
body
to feel
move into your tissues
Imagine that this love radiates through your body and out the
6.
pores of your skin, directly into your personal world, the world you
It
Unhmited love goes
day
in every
goes into the metal of your
live
into everything in your environment.
car, into
the material of your home, into the
clothes in your closet
Slowly open your eyes and look around. Be aware that
7.
emanation of love and unlimited thought continues life.
.
.
as
You have witnessed your connection with
.
have allowed
it
to touch you, to
into your conscious
become more
this
you go about your
the
One mind. You
real to you,
and to come
life.
58 Transforming Fear
We live in a time when the personality's survival issues are being globally and
stimulated,
planet
is
present,
at
fear
about personal safety and the possible ruin of the
an all-time high. Some frightened people point to
and future-predicted
disasters,
past,
caused by humans or by nature,
and declare those disasters to be evidence of
how
close the planet
is
to
destruction.
Fear
is
beneficial to the extent
it
prompts you to take notice
of the
circumstances you are living with and motivates you to take constructive action. It
can be a healthy wake-up
call,
releasing
enough adrenaline into
your system to help you move through old patterns of denial or inaction. But
if
fear is
overwhelming you and causing you to shut down or
to
COMING HOME
240
with the doom, something
identify
circuit in
amiss.
is
You
are caught in a closed
which fear is working against you rather than for you.
Crisis
is
meant
to be identified,
not identified with
Remember, you manifest what you carry especially the issues
with
identify
fear
in your experience of
you identify with or believe to be most
and
real.
self,
As you
energy patterns of that identity
disaster, the
emanate into your world and take form, perpetuating the very distress
overwhelms you.
that already
This does not that of
mean you should
you should ignore
resist
distress in the
world to prevent manifesting more
You do not manifest everything you
it.
your fear (or other feelings) or
feel or
observe or respond
but rather only what you carry in your identity. In certain feelings
or look at
identifying with them;
it
specific
fact,
refusing to allow
issues will not keep
will just keep
to,
you from
you out of touch with what you
are carrying.
So what can you do predicted, from people
help you
make
when you
who
hear about disasters, present or
are in a state of fear?
These four steps may
constructive use of what can be an overwhelming cultural
input of frightening information.
9 ATTUNEMENT Responding to People's Fear
1.
Be aware of the
where that basic
fear those people are projecting.
fear resonates in yourself. Survival fears
human needs such
as having
enough money or
Or, you
may be
afraid for
whole
planet.
Notice the kind of fear you
acknowledge
it
as your
may
Then
notice
center on your
a loving relationship.
your physical survival or for the survival of the
own.
are
feeling,
and then
PLANETARY SURVIVAL
few moments and support yourself
Sit for a
2.
Most people do not do
fear.
this.
They
241
in accepting your
try to skip over the fear
and go
directly into action, complaint, or denial because underneath the fear
they
and
feel helpless
There
make you
alone.
nothing wrong with your
is
does not weaken you or
fear. It
a less spiritual person, nor does
make you
necessarily
it
effective in the world. In fact, fear carries strong energy that
consciously directed into constructive thought and action.
can be
You can take
advantage of this hidden power by giving yourself time to notice the
As long
it feels
Drop
fear
fear is
true
there,
go ahead and
like to
feel
Let
it.
my
be afraid for
it
have
its
survival."
may
into a deeper level of self that still
be with you, but
something greater;
it is
it is
not
expression.
Allow the
u
So
fear to
Your breath can take you there
self.
4.
is
all
just underneath the fear.
that exists. Along with the
the unconditional love and well-being of
ten breaths breathe you deeper into true
As your breath continues
instantly. Let each of
self,
to take
Everyone on the planet has a true
with everyone
you
as
else's.
self,
you deeper into true
and your true
Let your imagination
your next
gently and easily.
remember your connection with the planetary whole and
to
fear.
itself.
3.
The
it is
what
this is
reveal
as
less
show
its
self,
well-being.
self is
this to you. It
connected
may come
an image of being joined with everyone on the planet, or you
may simple feel or sense the unity. If
you need to begin imagining
picture yourself in
you will find country.
it
The
witnessing
how you
it
easier to join
of the
a smaller,
scale,
or neighborhood. Perhaps
with your town or your
a small
group
with the entire planet. One mind it,
more personal
state or
your
group does not matter. Witnessing your
One mind with
picture
entire world.
on
One mind with your friends
size
connection in
this
is is
just as effective as
One mind; no matter
you are witnessing the connection you have with the
COMING HOME
242
Sit for a
few moments
in the experience of
One mind.
connects you
It
with other people in love and in unlimited thought. Enjoy the aliveness
and vitality of that connection.
59 Attachment, Suffering, and Disaster
Many
situations considered disasters
by human beings
are quite natural
and necessary occurrences in the broader spectrum of nature. Floods, droughts, earthquakes, volcanic eruptions,
hurricanes, tornadoes,
fires,
and other cataclysmic events have always occurred as the pulse and breath of our planet's evolution. Similarly, through violence, ecological blunders,
and economic and
extremes in
its
political
humanity exhibits
crises,
its
own struggles to evolve.
The higher
collective consciousness, of
knows how important
which we
are each a part,
survival issues are for bringing the personality's
awareness to the One mind, and thus disasters will continue to be part of
human life for some time. The most attachments.
frightening thing about disaster
We
is
that
it
tend to be attached to material things, to people, to
being free of pain, to having certain feelings, to remaining array of other conditions. is
threatens our
Of course,
it isn't
alive,
and to an
wrong to want these things.
It
natural for the personality to seek safety, comfort, and companionship;
the personality desires to be healthy and vital in every desire
and attachment
are not always the
when
being
is
desire
may not be fulfilled
threatened
our desire
—
it is
Attachment
is
is
same
not
way
possible. Yet
thing. If our sense of well-
fulfilled
— or when we
attachment.
anything the personality
mistakes for true well-being.
fear
our
PLANETARY SURVIVAL
Let's
243
look at the most basic attachment: survival. Survival instinct
you to stay
any
also
Attachment to staying alive, however, includes the underlying belief that you will suffer in some way if you
die.
The aspect
tells
long as
it
alive at
cost.
of personality that believes
stays physically alive
is
will have well-being only as
it
panicked
at the
degree you fear that death means losing your
thought of dying. To the
true well-being,
you will be
attached to physical survival.
This attachment will serve you by motivating you to that will keep you alive. However, will
become
and to
feel
a
burden because
when
it is
time to
preparing you peacefully
make you
it
will
it
knows how
wrong and
is
feel conflict
and
is
will try to
It
for the transition of death,
distress.
Avoid death
to give:
attachment
shouldn't happen. So instead of
— and even joyfully—
Attachment to physical survival has only one
there
die, this
choices
will cause your personality to fear death,
it
anguish and suffering as death approaches.
convince you that death
make
at
any
gear, only
cost. It has
a proper time to die or that there is
one message
no awareness that
an extraordinary well-being
to be found in death.
On
the other hand,
unlimited spirit
is
what
alive, vibrant, loving,
you
know
in ever)7 fiber of your being that
most
real in
you
if
is
— and that your
and rooted in well-being
after
spirit
your physical death
the thought of dying will not bring you panic, pain, or suffering. still
desire
stay physically
to
alive
remains
and choose your
daily
You may actions
You
accordingly, but you will not be under the control of attachment. will be choosing
life
while not fearing death.
Attachments occur in discern. For example,
all
areas of our lives
and can be
difficult to
you may have trouble recognizing attachment
relationship because love
and attachment
may feel the emotion of love but
also,
are so easily entwined.
in a
You
perhaps unconsciously, believe your
well-being depends on that person.
To the degree your well-being
depends
relationship
on
another
inadequately so
person,
—your relationship with true
Your relationship with true All That Is
your
self
is
replacing
— and
and is an attachment.
self (or Source, Spirit,
—whatever term you prefer)
is
God, the universe,
your primary relationship and
the only one that can provide you with unwavering, unconditional wellbeing. Well-being
is
true
self's
nature. True self radiates well-being
no
COMING HOME
244
matter what happens in your relationships or any other part of your
True
well-being
self's
throughout
all
unconditional:
is
unwavering
remains
It
changes in the conditions of your
life
and the
life.
range of
full
your personality's feelings.
You may be tempted
to say, "Well,
it's
okay to
my well-being because they are more important
for
on people
rely
I
love
than material objects.
Material things like money, cars, and houses have less spiritual value, but
people are really important. So surely relying on people for can't
my well-being
be an attachment."
dependency
Yet, a
dependency, and you cannot "upgrade" by
a
is
choosing a loftier one. Relying on a person, place, or event to replace the unconditional well-being
of
personality's disconnection
— or
true
self
to
compensate
for
from the unconditional well-being of true
— makes that reliance an attachment. The antidote to attachment
self
open to true
self
the
integrate
it
fill
your
on
grip
to
when you
into your
life, it
life,
more unconditional well-beingyoufeel.
life,
each of your attachments. to
is
and its well-being.
The more consciously you experience true selfinyour daily
Ironically,
your
strengthen your experience of true
you eventually will encounter a Initially, as
self
and
loss related to
you allow the well-being
of true self
radiates into your fears, loosening your personality's
attachments.
Sometimes
the
process
releasing
of
your
attachments will be easy, giving you a deep sense of relief.
Other times fear
and
grief
it
will be difficult
you had hoped
all
and
your
life
painful, stimulating the
kind of
to avoid. Sooner or later in your
return to true self each attachment will be challenged and relinquished.
Yet you will discover that even those losses, no matter
how much
your
personality feared them, do not disturb the deep, unwavering well-being in your true
self.
That
is
freedom.
Some people move through this process with outer dramas. They lose their
homes
in fires; they lose loved ones in accidents; they lose their jobs
during a recession. They
may do
few years, or they may do it
PLANETARY SURVIVAL
245
new loss
every
this sequentially, facing a
once, losing everything in one disaster.
all at
Other people go through the process of releasing their attachments internally,
without manifesting
much observable
outer loss. For example,
discord surfaces in their marriages, prompting a long, painful process of introspection.
They
learn to emotionally let go of their attachment to
relationship as their primary source of well-being while they increase the
well-being they receive from true their
self.
Because of that
problems without losing their marriages
attachment.
Or shake-ups
work
at
they work out
— they just transform the
them
force
shift,
on
to stop relying
jobs as their source of personal identity, but they do not end
up
their
actually
losing their jobs.
Attachments distract the personality from unwavering well-being,
away from our unlimited nature
diverting awareness
into limitation.
A
belief that our true well-being
depends on having money,
a great car, nice clothes, or
even good physical health reinforces the
a
home,
illusion that these limited things are the source of our existence
a mate,
and well-
being.
Understand that there
working
for them,
is
nothing wrong with wanting those things,
and enjoying them when
we
have them.
mistaking them for the source of our true well-being can't have well-being
without them
It is
our
— or believing we
— that makes them attachments.
Consider that your survival
may depend solely
on your alignment with unlimited spirit
The
vital life force of
unlimited spirit streaming through your body
and your energy system is the cause physical
being
life
alive.
and consciousness.
No
It
of your existence.
also carries the true joy
you forward in the world. of
what gives you and pleasure
of
material thing or other physical being can give you the
supreme happiness of conscious surrender
fulfillment
It is
your
If
to unlimited spirit as
it
carries
you are out of touch with true
attachments
will
be
compensation, not a satisfying replacement.
a
self,
weak and temporary
246
COMING HOME
There
no reason
to feel
bad about yourself
for
externals. That's just part of
your personality's
way
is
physical world. Yet
it
feeling separate
uneasy because
self,
are:
attempts to compensate for
or Source. This witnessing can
make you
brings your focus to the inner disconnection with
which you have been is
what they
for
from true it
of relating to the
can be helpful to witness your attachments and
them honestly
recognize
your attachment to
and that
living,
is
by nature uncomfortable.
Still, it
helpful to witness this disconnection compassionately, staying
yourself
and not turning away in
you may
feel.
You long joy that
to
disappointed in
from true
self
spite of the discomfort or disorientation
be whole. You long to
your true nature.
is
life
—
is
it
because that
If
with
you
know
the unconditional love and
feel separate
and
afraid
— even secretly
important to recognize your disconnection
is
essentially the cause of all your suffering.
All suffering is separation from Source.
look at what this means in terms of your fears about survival.
Let's
If
one or more of your primary survival fears were to manifest, you would probably
call it
a disaster or a catastrophe.
Losing your house and
belongings in a flood could be one such event, and perhaps you fear
because of the suffering you would cause suffering; losing your
feel.
Yet losing your
home does
home and not being aware
it
not
of unlimited
Source streaming through you causes the suffering. Getting a debilitating or terminal disease illness
is
a
common
fear.
Such an
can certainly create physical and emotional pain, exhaustion, and
ongoing
distress. Yet, as
uncomfortable as the
illness
may be,
it is
not the
cause of suffering; illness without conscious experience of unlimited
Source
the cause of suffering.
is
This
is
because pain
is
an intense sensation that is
not necessarily suffering. Pain is filtered
are not also
simply pain
through our consciousness, where
interpreted according to our reality.
when we
is
it
We interpret pain as suffering only
aware of the unwavering well-being that
undisturbed, within us at a level deeper than the pain sensations.
exists,
PLANETARY SURVIVAL
247
In fact, living in any conditions without noticing the vibrant flow of
Source and
unwavering well-being causes
its
abundance of money, friends,
and
a beautiful
Even though
endlessly.
home, excellent
all
health, loving family
and
all the other "right" things
You can have an
suffering.
still
your attachments are
suffer quietly
fulfilled, living
awareness of Source creates an inner disaster, and you are All people affect,
and
and and
without
still suffering.
are affected by, each other through their
participation in the collective consciousness. Because of this inherent
connection, groups of people will act out the various survival issues of the
whole planet to help bring growth and alignment times
different
and
people
places,
will
to everyone
display,
on
it.
So, at
through
their
the planet's collective suffering that comes from the
personalities,
personality's lack of awareness of Source
and
unwavering well-being.
its
This will often be done through their participation in disasters.
You may witness these
disasters because
you
live nearby,
you know
the people involved, or you see the disasters in the media. As a witness,
you are in a sacred position. You are watching the display of an issue that connects you to those people no matter
watching
how
a situation that unfolds in part for
for the contribution
When criticize or
If
your
suffer,
own growth,
you witness
seeing their suffering hurts you
judge them
—
it is
because they
You
are
as well as
your heart to yourself and to your
feelings.
their disconnection
— or even causes you to
reflect the
disconnection. This situation can be valuable
to the others
are.
you can make back to the whole by your response.
you see other people
from Source.
away they
far
if
you
Then
let
let
pain of your
own
compassion open
compassion join you
who share your suffering and are displaying it for you. 60
From Responding to can be a
a disaster
tall order.
Crisis to
Compassion
from compassion rather than from
fear or crisis
Facing our disconnection from Source can seem
overwhelmingly frightening. In
fact,
many people
feel so
threatened by
their inner disconnection that they stay completely unconscious of
it
and
COMING HOME
248
don't let themselves feel
it
or deal with
at
it
The
all.
result is that they
automatically react to disaster, theirs or others', with instant fear or blame.
For most people, denial of the pain of disconnection daily living
focused on attachments
is
specific situations
— external
from
suffering
this
unconscious that
it
is
It
can
them to reevaluate you to look
and
at
security.
people, or
and security that
a type of addiction.
disconnection can be pushed
so
far
into
The the
takes the impact of a disaster to break through.
Disaster often causes the loss of one or
attachments.
so strong that
things,
— in an attempt to find happiness
would otherwise come from Source. This
is
jar
more primary external
people out of their pattern of addiction and force
their lives.
For example, losing your home can force
how deeply you relied on your possessions for your identity You then have the opportunity
true identity, recognizing that the external
you but does not create Similarly, losing
to look within to find your
world
reflects that identity to
it.
your job or your
life
savings can force you to face
questions about where you believe your true source of support exists and
how
fully
you are able to trust
it
and
bring you to true self for support that
Any
rely
is
on
it.
This inner inquiry can
unconditional and cannot be
lost.
event involving loss can trigger underlying panic and pain that
comes from your personality's persistent attempts to maintain control a
world that
is,
in actuality,
beyond
To
its control.
"recover"
in
you may
need to surrender to an inner well-being that enriches your life regardless of external circumstances
and then
carefully re-create
your
life
based on
that surrender to inner well-being.
Losing loved ones, or even losing a relationship with them, can be the
most trying
disaster. All healing
compassion and patience combination of
Attachment
true,
self.
for yourself.
this loss
Most
must be done with
close relationships are a
open-hearted love and the personality's attachment.
—wanting
disconnection from true true
from
the self
outer
relationship
to
compensate
for
— can be faced and used as a springboard to
PLANETARY SURVIVAL
Some people who experience
disaster are able to use
for freeing themselves of the attachment that
as a catalyst
it
shaken loose. They
is
let
be forever changed by that break in addiction. Seeing with
their lives
new
249
make
focus, they learn to
choices that
come from deeper
Others return to the addiction as soon as the outer
profound change into your
life.
let
truth.
crisis is over.
Whether you directly experience disaster or witness you always have the opportunity to
a
it
elsewhere,
the situation touch you and bring
You can allow
the disaster to be a mirror,
reflecting your inner disaster of living in disconnection from Source. Feel
whatever emotions are present. Open to your
away from
From
it,
suffering
without turning
and open to the unwavering love and well-being of Source.
there you have the
power
to
make new
choices and to create
new
possibilities.
Witnessing the suffering of others can be traumatic, even when the event
witnessed only though the media. Because of their
is
difficulty
coping with the trauma, witnesses often try to find order in the situation
by making rationalizations or by passing judgment on the people who
are
the victims, or the cause, of the disaster. In an attempt to leap past their
discomfort at being separated from Source, witnesses situation
by saying such things
something to deserve (or create)
this."
out of balance that nature (or god) luck (or bad karma) has don't feel things the
made
way we
this
do."
as "Those people
is
"Their
way
may
react to the
must have done
of living has been so
teaching them a lesson." "Their bad
happen
to them." "Those people really
who
"The people
caused this disaster
are our enemies (or are evil)."
The
list
of possible
of distancing ourselves
judgments goes on endlessly and serves as from
suffering. This is
a
way
done automatically, and
usually unconsciously, to avoid having the suffering of others remind us of our
own
judgment
is
not helpful.
distressing separation or trigger our inner suffering. Passing a very It
human
thing to do, and
not "wrong"; but
prevents us from going deeper into
with Source can happen. (Note: No one Source [true
it is
self].
The disconnection
is
self
it
also is
where reconnection
ever really disconnected from
or separation discussed in this
COMING HOME
250
chapter
is
simply the personality's lack of conscious awareness of Source,
which feels If
like a disconnection.)
you notice yourself rationalizing, judging, or dismissing someone
you can do something to gently nudge yourself out of this
else's suffering,
automatic, limited reaction.
ATTUNEMENT Finding Compassion in a Crisis
for
1.
Take
2.
Recognize your judgment as a sign you need to have compassion
a
deep breath and give yourself a few quiet moments.
your deep, perhaps hidden 3.
suffering.
Let yourself experience the discomfort, to whatever degree
be there, of feeling out of connection with true distress of missing at certain
4.
true self
it
now. You may
self,
it
may
or Source. Feel the
also feel the pain of having
missed
it
times in the past.
Let yourself feel
how much you long for conscious experience of
— the unlimited love and
vitality of
Source
— streaming through
your being, bringing you joy and well-being. 5.
Gently take
takes you a 6.
little
five to ten
more breaths, imagining that each breath
deeper into your true
self.
From that deeper place, allow the unlimited love of true self,
which is the essence
of your being, to flow through you, bringing comfort
and connection.
9
PLANETARY SURVIVAL
251
61
Allowing Integration
Regardless of
how you
go through the process
attachments and no matter
self
inner emptiness you tried to
possibilities.
It
becomes an opening through which life.
new
fulfillment,
you may encounter some
unexpected feelings of grief. Even though you may have sense of self and
The
with attachments eventually becomes
vibrant well-being can enter your to live with
opens you to greater
fill
spacious rather than vacant.
feel a
your grip on
how difficult it may be, letting go and turning
your awareness toward true
As you begin
of loosening
a
more expansive
deeper love and joy, your personality
to grieve the loss of the attachments
it
had carried for so
may still need
long. This is part
new reality you are creating for yourself. So be when you come into a profound expansiveness of
of its adjustment to the
aware that
at
times
being, there can also be a sense of loss. This feeling
the joy and feel the
grief, too.
Accept the
full
is
quite natural. Feel
range of
who you
are in
those moments.
Understand that your transformation may take you back and forth
between seemingly opposite inner the expansiveness of your true
realities.
self:
yet also very present in the world.
For awhile you may
live in
genuinely less attached to externals
You may relate
to work, to people,
to material things from a place of deeper, unshakable love
Then, a few moments or days or weeks
later,
and
and well-being.
you may suddenly
feel
caught up in your old attachments again, as though you are not free of
them is
after
all.
This process of cycling through one awareness to the other
part of the integration of newly learned experience. At such times have
patience, stay present to return
you to true
with
yourself,
self.
9
and continue allowing your breath
COMING HOME
252
ATTUNEMENT Witnessing Your Attachments
When is
facing your attachments, your first act of compassion for yourself
to allow the attachments to
do not have to get over them.
be
there. Let the
It is
too
much
attachments be okay. You
to expect yourself to notice
attachments and get over them at the same time; your personality will resist
that kind of pressure.
You
can, however, notice your attachments
and give yourself permission to have them. That
is
compassionate
witnessing.
Notice your attachments as they surface, and jot them down. This
week you could probably make attached list,
to.
where
You may want
it
a list of ten or
to keep
it
on the
will be accessible. Give the
list
more things you
refrigerator, like a
are
shopping
two columns, and use
it
the
following way:
Each time you notice an attachment, write
1.
column. There's no need to put in
know what
it
is.
Just
much
it
down
in the first
description or explanation; you
name the attachment. For example, you might
write,
Today I was attached
to:
•
Money
•
My child
•
Getting my
•
Finding a relationship
•
Eating sweets
2.
After you identify each attachment, use the second column to
write
way
at work
what you were hoping
"feeling safe" or "security".
to get from
it.
For "my child" you
For "money" you
may put
may have hoped for "feeling
am a complete person". "Relationship" may have been meant to give you "validation that I am worthy of love and good things". Eating sweets like
I
may have been for "feeling comforted".
PLANETARY SURVIVAL
Allow yourself to
list
your attachments with acceptance. You are
ready to look at them, which
is
the
first
step in releasing them. There's no
need to be over your attachments by the end
of the
week. You just need to
explore them. Be honest and forthright with yourself. yourself an important
substitute for Source.
gift:
253
You
are giving
awareness of the things that have been your
COMING HOME
254
RINCON My second dog, Rincon, was down the hall in my bedroom, curled up and fast asleep on my bed. In the kitchen I was happily chopping vegetables for dinner while half-watching the news on my little counter top TV. Suddenly a chaotic chorus of screaming and shouting jolted looking up,
where
I
saw image
being swooshed across the
was destroying water;
some
of
their village.
after
TV
image of helpless and
flailing
screen by the merciless tidal
Most
of
them barely kept
them went under, with
little
me
into
people
wave
that
their heads above
likelihood of resurfacing off
camera. I
put
down my
knife
and stepped back,
as
new distance might magically lessen the tragedy, The day
before, along
with the
though the three or
impact on me.
its
rest of the world,
feet of
I
had been shocked
and saddened to learn of the devastating tsunami in the Indian Ocean. But tonight the real footage from inside the disaster was being televised. Clip after clip of it, mostly filmed by tourists lucky enough to be near safe
was being
perches on the top floors and roofs of the tallest buildings,
played nonstop.
Knowing about hearing and seeing
the tsunami and the lives lost
it
happen, feeling so close that
and yank those people out of the water and into another. Yesterday realizing
I
was one wanted
my
thing, but
to reach out
kitchen
— that was
had known what had happened; tonight
I
I
was
what had happened.
know when I started crying, it was so soft and quiet. I only noticed my tears when I heard the faint thud of Rincon jumping off my bed, and then the poof, poof, poof of his big paws padding his way up the I
don't
carpeted hall to the kitchen. There
he
knew what he was
front of me, his at mine.
More
doing. In three steps he
back to the
was
at the
doorway;
across the kitchen in
TV and his soft, brown eyes looking calmly up
gracefully than
dog, he stretched
was no moment's wait
I
would have expected from
up and planted
his front
paws on my
a
75-pound
shoulders.
He
broke eye contact only to reach his head forward and press a velvety cheek to mine,
first
against one side of
my
face,
and then against the
PLANETARY SURVIVAL
other. Then, as gently as
he had approached, he pushed
off
255
and retraced
his steps. Still
suffering
standing where Rincon had I
had witnessed on the other
the compassion
I
had just received
poof of Rincon's return bed, no doubt to curl
down
the
up once more.
in
left
me,
my
side of the
my
hall,
heart aching for the
world and comforted by
kitchen,
I
heard the poof, poof,
then his springy landing on the
Part XI
9
YOU ARE THE EARTH Living the
One Body
62 Inner and Outer Realities
Our
culture has traditionally maintained a strong division between inner
experience and outer
In this separation, the personality has
reality.
functioned under the assumption that our inner reality
is
only minimally
we have believed that outer reality acts example, we have taken for granted that
related to outer reality. Primarily,
we
on us and that
outer occurrences that
respond. For
— such as other people's words and
actions, or events
happen around us or that we witness through media
feelings
and
affect
— cause our
our thoughts.
We have experienced life this way through our personality. Yet, just beyond
our
relationship
To
see
between our inner
it, let's
Your
awareness
personality's
life
self
more
intimate,
reciprocal
and outer reality has been
flourishing.
a
take another look at manifestation. manifests from your total sense of
Your identity
self.
energetically emanates into the world, creating everything in your affecting your responses to itself
into
Essentially,
it.
life
and
This means that the inner you projects
the world and then interacts with
its
own
projection.
you have been meeting manifestations of yourself ever} day. 7
This dynamic of manifestation has been going on forever, yet the cultural viewpoint has affect
our outer
reality.
been that our inner experience does not Rather,
it
directly
has assumed that outer reality can only
be affected by our personal actions or by some other outer influence. The
bottom
been
line consistently has
a belief in
two
separate realities, rather
than a unified one. This separation of inner and outer
realities
has been valuable in
supporting humanity's exploration of limitation But culture's consciousness is ready to
separation, something
new
is
been keeping inner and outer
now
that the
go beyond the confines of life based on
happening. The barrier of belief that has
realities separate is dissolving.
Much of the distress you see in the world comes from people living as though everyone
and everything they
affect
is
not them
COMING HOME
260
People are willing to put believe life,
up with
depleted and that strip mining issue
may
them
is
one
way
deeply concern you, you do not
would feel, of the
kinds of destruction as long as they
may believe that the
For example, you
too.
all
not happening to them personally. This applies to your
it is
say,
same
own
earth's resources are being
it is
happening. Although this
feel it
with the immediacy you
your foot being scraped. Yet the two events are variations
thing,
and without the
belief in separation
as such. Similarly, to the degree
everything you do in your outer
life is
you are not
you would
feel
aware that
fully
something you do to yourself, you
contribute to the cultural belief in separation.
Again,
mass
now
belief in
that the culture's consciousness
separation
is
In a
shifting.
ready for change, the
is
sense,
the energetics of
consciousness responsible for maintaining the clear division between inner and outer realities
longer be maintained.
is
losing its integrity.
As the pattern transforms, the inner and outer
begin to blend in humanity's awareness.
realities realities,
once separate, have
now begun
Our awareness
It is as
is
though these two
back and forth with
to flicker
each other. This will continue until there merging, a unity.
The old pattern can no
no longer separation but a
will be changed.
thought existed externally will be recognized within
Whatever we once
And
us, too.
all
that
originates within us will be evident to us everywhere.
This
is
culture can
joyous news.
It
means that
no longer hold separation
individually
in place.
It
and
collectively the
can no longer deplete
the earth without people consciously feeling the sensation in their
bodies and emotions. You
you love the earth and the awakening.
You
are
It
may already be feeling some of this pain about what
feel
may be
it,
If
you are in
making an important connection. realities
continue to merge, there
be tremendous disorientation in people's place where this particularly
and
happening to
sensation.
uncomfortable, but rejoice in your sensitivity.
As the inner and outer
use of
is
own
shows up
money has been based on
outer. People have
is
is
bound
lives across the planet.
in economics. In
most
to
One
cultures,
the belief in separation between inner
thought of money as something separate from
who
YOU ARE THE EARTH
261
they are within rather than a manifested expression or reflection of their essence and their current consciousness. They have seen
something that exists completely outside them
money
as
the purpose of
for
manipulating their outer conditions.
To the degree
this is a culture's perspective, that culture's
shaken as the
field
separation
place
in
of consciousness that has held the inner/outer
Each
transforms.
unpredictable as the consciousness being.
None
likely
to
stabilized into the
The
it
the
until
cultural
economy becomes
culture's
reflects
of these economies (or the
stabilize
economy is
moves into
world economy consciousness
a
new way
of
whole)
is
as a it
has
reflects
new pattern of inner/outer unity.
personality judges such economic changes as good or bad.
makes these judgments automatically and
how comfortable or uncomfortable the
arbitrarily,
situation
is
change threatens the personality's attachments. turn that causes distress,
it is
judged as bad.
If
based entirely on
and on the
If it is
It
how much the
economy takes
a
a severe turn or an
uncomfortable turn that stays for a long time, the personality's feelings of
doom and
fears
about survival get highly activated and can seem very
convincing.
The
personality's
reactions
compassionate thing to do its
are
to also
is
to
be respected, yet the
open our awareness to true
unwavering well-being and perception of perfection.
offer that unlimitedness to
our personality while
it is
We
self-
self
and
can then
suffering in its
limitation.
63
The World Catches Up with You Allow yourself to observe the
shift in
your
life
as the separation
inner and outer realities weakens and dissolves.
seems to be getting more
difficult for
you to close
You may off
between
notice that
it
from the world and
Perhaps you are more easily affected by what you observe
the people in
it.
in the world.
At times you may feel
as
though
all
the pain and grief on the
planet are closing in on you, and you are helpless in the midst of
it.
It
COMING HOME
262
becomes harder
for
other people.
doesn't have anything to do with me." Instead, you start
thinking,
"I
It
your mind to keep
never noticed before
people. It has never
The truth
is
been
that
it
has
of humanity's existence,
separate from
it.
this
how bad
this
many
it?"
one way or another
for
much
you are more immersed in the world and more
The world
is
all
that
is
manifested.
becoming more personal
always been you externally
an internal, personal is
in
happening to
but you are no longer able to keep yourself so
vulnerable to directly experiencing
from what
bad
is
things really are for so
bad before, has
been
"That
Now that you can no longer hold the belief in separation
so strongly in place,
What has
telling you,
level. Increasingly,
is
you
to you.
becoming more feel like
you
at
you cannot get away
happening in the world. You might think
recent, rapid fire technological advances
real to
this is
because the
keep putting you face to face
with practically everything occurring across the globe. The internet, social networking,
and telephone technology,
for example, give
you
far
more images and information than you can process. Yet technology
is
the external world.
not the reason you cannot distance yourself from In fact,
technological advances that outwardly
connect us with the world are happening because our consciousness
opening to the merging of inner and outer
realities
and to our true
connectedness with everyone and everything. As this
shift
in
is
self
our
consciousness speeds up, breakthroughs in the technologies that mirror
our increasing awareness of connectedness will race forward even faster
and with farther reaching results than anything we can imagine now.
The is
real reason
because
all
of
it
you cannot distance yourself from the external world
springs
from within you
cannot make lasting change
in the
in
some way. This means that you
world by working exclusively to make
the change "out there". Because outer reality springs from your conscious
and unconscious experience
want
to live in a
world
of
self, it
forms
itself to reflect you. If
world greatly changed from what you
as a reflection of
now
see,
you
view the
what you carry within. Let the outer world take
YOU ARE THE EARTH
you back to
its
source of creation, your inner
self.
That
is
263
the place to
begin transformation.
Many
people try to hold the outer world out. They see what
"wrong" out there and try hard to faces turned fact,
fix
it.
But
all
the while they keep their
from themselves. The world cannot be fixed that way.
the world cannot be fixed at
into your heart,
In
Rather, as you let the world back
all.
back into your being,
is
it
will graciously transform.
64 Healing the
You may
World
already be working on this transformation in your
Opening to yourself issues of distress,
acknowiedged,
is
When
the key.
way.
you allow your deep, personal
and even emotional or physical abuse,
felt,
own
to surface
and be
and shared with understanding and supportive
people, you are healing yourself
and the world. You
are bringing to
awareness the distressing inner experiences you have been unconsciously
emanating into the world. Just as the energy of those inner
conflicts has
been repeating the experience of distress or abuse within your system this time,
it
all
has been contributing to the manifestation of distress and
abuse in the world. As you bring healing to yourself, you are offering healing to the world. It
may be uncomfortable
internally,
distress
to hear that issues
you have been carrying
and probably unconsciously, have been "contributing
and abuse in the world".
be aware that
this does not
also does not
mean you
If so,
mean
take a deep breath and
there
is
to the
yourself
anything wrong with you.
It
are necessarily responsible for anyone else's
suffering, violence, or misdirected action. It simply reality
let
you have been carrying has contributed
means that the inner to the cultural
planetary consciousness that has manifested those things.
You arc part of the creation of everything that exists in the world.
and
COMING HOME
264
important to recognize this great influence your inner reality has
It is
When
on the outer world. happens "out there"
is
you turn away from
insisting that
it,
what
caused "out there," you keep yourself disconnected
from your greatest power for creating change: yourself. Nothing can manifest in your outer reality that does not reflect
own
you compassionately
some part
your connection to what
reconnect with yourself at a level where you can
As
of you.
manifested, you
is
make meaningful change
both internally and externally.
look at an example.
Let's
personality fears the unlimited
its
life
We
have already discussed
how
your
own destruction because it does not recognize as real
and unwavering well-being that
Therefore, you are carrying fears
The energy patterns
and
of those fears
beliefs that
and
beliefs
exists in pure spirit.
you can be destroyed.
about your destruction
emanate into the world where they manifest "out there" in situations that
seem to occur independently of you. The destruction
is
possibility of the planet's
a manifestation of this personal issue
on
a
grand
scale.
There are innumerable actions you can take to try to prevent the
You can
planet's destruction.
well as your own.
looking at
You can
how their
made from these
change other people's behavior as
try to
try to
change people's
priorities
and ways
of
actions affect the world. Noticeable progress can be
efforts,
but unless the inner issue also changes, the outer
progress will routinely suffer significant setbacks. As long as the inner issue of your
own destruction is
active, the outer issue of destruction will
continue to be expressed in the world.
Facing this outer issue as a reflection of an inner issue gives you the
opportunity to make peace in the most powerful place yourself.
As you turn inward and your personality speaks
— showing you the emotions, distress — you can that have been causing
vulnerability
history
and
fear
beliefs,
its
witness
its reality. If
to
first:
within
you about
and personal
compassionately
you do not want to be limited to that
reality,
within
yourself and in the world, you can add the unlimitedness of true self to
To make that
is
that choice,
the essence of
all
remember the things and
all
its
love that you are
it.
and the love
beings. Imagine that you inhale
unwavering compassion, support, and healing. Gently open to the vibrant
YOU ARE THE EARTH
flow of life force that
unthreatened and undiminished by any thoughts,
As you do
feelings, or events. love,
is
this,
you bring unlimitedness (unlimited
compassion, support, healing, and
(the personality's fears
265
and beliefs
life
force) alongside hmitation
in its destruction).
Remember
that unlimitedness carries greater essential truth than
does limitation
— and when you carry both in your awareness, the former
will affect the
begins
teach
to
experience of
As the alignment you hold with unlimitedness
latter.
and repattern your
hmitation, your
personality's
become more expansive. The energy patterns your
self will
consciousness
emanates
into
expansiveness
and
be
will
world
the
your
will
contribution
reflect
to
the
that
new
collective
consciousness.
Through repeatedly bringing unhmitedness of
what
is
into your inner experience
manifested in the world, you will start relating more to your
spiritual indestructibihty
destruction.
And your
than to your personality's
fears of physical
thoughts, feelings, and actions will increasingly
spring from unlimited love and unwavering well-being.
The
collective consciousness manifests
world events and
situations.
Because you are part of the collective consciousness, your expanded
awareness will contribute to the creation of tangible global conditions that reflect unlimited love
and unwavering well-being. Others who
are
taking practical action to create these conditions will also be supported
by your energy.
With
this in
mind,
let's
review the main steps for using the power of
inner connection to deal with world issues that distress you.
9 ATTUNEMENT Responding to Distress
1.
World
Let any distressing issue in the world you take your awareness to
your inner version of that 2.
in the
issue.
Gently explore that inner issue as
it
relates to
your personal life—
COMING HOME
266
feel
the feelings, observe the beliefs, and share your heartfelt experience
with trusted support people.
As you accept the existence
3.
unlimitedness
few minutes
take a
You can
in, too.
let
of the
inner limitation, invite
your breath breathe you into true
self,
you
for prayer or meditation, or use another technique
prefer.
Imagine your
4.
being into your
life
new
focus on unlimitedness bringing love and well-
and expanding your perceptions of
yourself, others,
and the world.
From
5.
this alignment
with unlimited love and well-being, take the
outer action toward creating a healthier world that feels genuinely right to you.
Remember this inner alignment as you
take that action.
9 65 Sharing Consciousness with the Earth
It's
true
poetic;
what they
it is
say:
The earth
is
true at an essence level.
your mother. This image
The
is
not just
vibrational pattern of your
body
matches the vibrational pattern of the earth, which means that you and the earth share consciousness.
Not only do you take
The earth affects you, and you
in energy directly
takes in energy from you.
Whatever
energetically projected outward,
is
from the
affect
it.
but
it
earth,
also
going on in your body
and the earth
receives
it.
is
Because the
personality lives in your body, your issues about abuse and beliefs about
your destructibility are projected out to the earth, contributing to
its
and destruction.
vulnerability to these
same experiences
You cannot stop the
natural emanation of your energy patterns to the
earth any exhale.
It
more than you can keep
of abuse
air
from leaving your lungs
will not help to try to control the process
as
you
by thinking, "I'm not
going to project any negativity or destruction into the world." Such resistance to yourself will only create
more energy
of conflict
and
YOU ARE THE EARTH
struggle,
which
also will
emanate outward.
Instead, accept the connection you have with the earth
of yourself
and the earth
267
together.
and take
care
You can begin the process by becoming
conscious of your inner issues. Accept that the energy of those issues
connects you to the outer world in every moment. To whatever degree healthy and appropriate for you, gently face experiences you that, at
some point
still
may
discover forgotten instances of
abandonment, neglect, or abuse. Open your heart to yourself
and get support from others
of counselor
if
carry
in your past, might have seemed threatening to your
emotional or physical survival. You
explore,
is
— including
as you
a therapist or other type
you need to.
Don't give up on yourself. As you heal yourself you are healing the earth.
Because your healing and the earth's healing are one, whenever you
want greater healing for the
places within yourself that need healing.
Finding inner healing anguish you have avoided love
and compassionately go into the
earth, gently
may
of your
work is
there.
include accepting feelings of fear or
your
all
The heart
life. It
may
you never thought you deserved, or to
require learning to receive forgive
where you never
thought forgiveness was possible. As you surrender to your healing, you
come
to a depth of connection
that the greatest truth
is,
with
who you
truly are that reminds
you
and always has been, unwavering perfection
and well-being. You have the opportunity
7
to
embody
this truth as
you
open your heart in compassion to your personality's Hmitation and suffering
and open your mind to your deep memory of unlimited being.
From unlimited spirit's perspective, perfection
is all
and it
Our journey Home perfection.
is
is all
that has ever existed, that exists now.
our movement into
As we attune our inner hearing
move forward on
a
awareness of this
to the whispers of true
self,
we
path of profound exploration. By giving love to
ourselves and each other,
along the way.
full
we
generate the light that reveals each step
Part XII
9
MY STORY: EPILOGUE My Life Goes to the Dogs
MY STORY: EPILOGUE
271
66
Lessons of New Love Living from true self opens us to ever-deepening layers of unconditional
know we carry. No matter how many times it new discovery of love is a surprise, something
love our personality doesn't
has happened before, each
we
didn't
personality
see
coming and couldn't have
outer focused,
is
it
often attributes the cause of the
to a person or circumstance in our outer
wonderful that I'm in love
come
true.
life.
is
new love
"The person I'm dating
"My new
like never before."
The environment
Because our
predicted.
so supportive that
I
job
feel really
is
a
is
so
dream
good about
myself and other people."
People and circumstances can be catalysts for us to open more deeply to ourselves, but they are not the cause of love.
love as
it
emerges within us,
always been,
love
the
that
we
can recognize
we
are,
When we
it
as the
observe
same love
new
it
has
flowing through circuits of our
personality's awareness for the first time.
We have galaxies of worlds within us. Each time our personality opens the love that
we are in a new way,
one of those worlds opens to
In 2002, a
world opened kept I
new
— one
at a distance. It
know, dog
love emerged within I
had paid only
was
me
had been
make
and had always
I
How
could you have been
sense."
a cat person
cherished family members. In contrast,
dogs and preferred them
so powerfully that another
the world of dogs.
distant from dogs? That doesn't even I
us.
faint attention to
lovers are saying, "Whaa-at?
Since college
to
had
and considered felt little
cats
connection with
at a distance. Their behavior at close
jumping, drooling, and dirty
my
paws—was too much for me.
range— the
COMING HOME
272
Then one Saturday
afternoon, in a split second, that
changed.
all
I
fell
getting
my
passionately and irrevocably in love with dogs.
There wasn't even a dog in sight hair cut
when
overheard the
I
when it happened. I was
woman in
about her dog. She had gotten
him
puppy from
as a
that provided assistance dogs to people
puppy
had been her job
raiser, it
him back
then to give
the next chair telling her stylist
with
a local organization
As
disabilities.
and
him
a volunteer
for a year,
and
to the organization for his advanced training
and
possible placement as a
to raise
train
working dog for someone
with
living
a disability.
Her year with him was almost up. I
was
not paying attention to her
half-listening,
when
details,
a
my body and snapped me into now I loved dogs and that I was
lightning strike of energy surged through clear focus.
to
become The
I
knew,
I
absolutely knew, that
puppy raiser like her.
a
assistance dog organization
waiting for
Monday was worse than
was
closed for the weekend, and
the longest wait for Christmas
ever suffered as a child. Love for dogs filled
constantly.
I
wanted
without dogs
dog now.
— and that
beautiful to me,
Monday
my
I
my
couldn't believe
I
had
hadn't missed them! Suddenly
I
my
heart and
and
finally arrived,
I
Soon
applied.
I
all
my life.
For the next year
a service dog, she
became impeccable supermarkets, and
we
a day.
in
I
I
Because she was in training to
—
was permitted everywhere with me
all
when I had
situations.
to dash
She
— and her manners
stuck
back to the
stores,
my
by
side
an item
last aisle for
way
I
of other
had always heard people say that the marvelous thing about dogs
more powerful and healing
Whenever
in
returned.
that they love us unconditionally.
dogs.
who became
attended dog training classes
forgotten, she lay quietly next to our cart, out of the
shoppers, until
dogs were
was matched with my
movies, restaurants, art shows, public transportation
had
thoughts
and I longed to be close to them.
and were together almost 24 hours
become
had
lived so long
puppy, Chloe, a yellow Labrador and Golden Retriever mix the center of
I
I
looked
at
force
No one had is
ever told
me
is
that an even
the unconditional love we feel for our
Chloe, or even thought of her,
I
felt
the pure,
MY STORY: EPILOGUE
unconditional love of true
with me
all
day, that
was
273
through me. Because she was
self radiating
a lot of unconditional love!
67
Dog Training as Chloe loved training and, to
was
a natural at
it.
my great
For both of
built our relationship
a Spiritual Practice
surprise and delight,
us, training
and brought us
was
joy.
personality and true
Training dogs
is
self:
didn't think about
I
my
We teach dogs to behave
rooted in the conditional:
they're off leash at the
each other in play. Yet our
We
at the
the conditional and the unconditional.
leash, they are to greet people
love:
it
I
that
for integrating
to specifications that change according to conditions.
when
games
a series of fun
dog training became the perfect exercise
time, but
discovered
I
they're
on
and other dogs calmly and appropriately;
dog park, they can run around and jump on
relationship
love our dogs in
When
all
with dogs
is
based in unconditional
no matter how the conditions
situations,
change.
To do well with dogs, we must adapt our training to changing conditions while remaining in the unconditionally loving state.
Our tactics change; our love does not.
As
it
turns out, this
with our
self
behaviors
is
also the formula for success in our relationship
and our relationships with other people. Our emotions and
change
according
to
changing
unconditional love remains constant. This personality to apply.
The personality has
conditional emotion of love from true
is
conditions,
but
deeper,
a challenging formula for the
trouble discerning the changing,
self's
unconditional love.
Conditional emotions come and go in reaction to changes in conditions. For example,
when
people
personality feels love for them. Then, to us, that
is
a
we
when
love are
good
to us, our
those same people are
mean
change in conditions; and the love disappears as our pain
COMING HOME
274
That kind of love, pain, and anger
or anger arises.
conditional.
is
we don't consciously notice it, underneath those emotions the unwavering, unconditional love we are made of continues radiating to those people — and to our self. The more adept we become at noticing Yet even
if
that constant radiance of unconditional love, the stable
we become,
regardless of
what
direction the
more balanced and
winds
of
emotion are
blowing.
Dog
lovers
when our dog
know still
that a profound love
won't come
after
bonds us with our dog. But
we've called 10 times, chews an
expensive shoe, or toilets in the house again, our personality might
suddenly
angry instead of loving. The personality's
feel frustrated or
emotions are volatile as conditions change. Yet the more conscious
become
of the unconditional love that keeps flowing, undisturbed,
more relaxed and patient we
the surface of that volatility, the
we
below
naturally
remain with our dog.
True self's unconditional love is not an emotion, but a state of being.
It is quieter,
more subtle,
and more enduring than emotion.
With practice,
I
learned to remain tethered to
my unconditional love
my
emotions surfaced. To
no matter what Chloe was doing or which of be a good dog surprised
trainer,
I
me — let my
In other words,
I
had
had to stay present
also
conditional emotions
in the
become
moment and
—
this
even more conditional.
to learn not to hold onto emotions but to let
them
go the moment the conditions that had triggered them changed. For example, in the early days
it
was hard
guests came through the front door and she
jump on them. Sometimes her attention. But the little
butt on the
I
felt
moment
floor,
I
immediately disappear. The
to get Chloe to
wanted
exasperated because
sit
when
to dash over it
was hard
to get
me and placed her all my exasperation
she finally looked at
praised her and let
moment the
and
condition (Chloe not sitting)
MY STORY: EPILOGUE
my
changed,
conditional emotion (the exasperation that
went with
275
that
condition) had to change, too.
had not learned
If I
been
poor
a
voice,
trainer.
conditional emotions go,
Chloe would have heard me say Good
but because dogs respond to our emotions even more than
to our
felt
my
exasperation linger while she was
That mixed message— Good
and
Girl
I'm
still
—would have confused her and taken the fun out of
Then she would have felt even less motivated to
was
Good
would have happy
sitting for me.
It
I
Girl in a
words, she also would have
you
my
to let
tricky for
me
to learn that training
Girl but kept feeling, Well,
know
I
go through
and we go through
this,
for us to get good at
if it
this
sitting for me.
me the next time.
would not work
if I
said
good you're sitting now, but you sure took
was ever going to happen.
long enough and
didn't
that's
sit for
unhappy with
every day! Sheesh,
It's
how
so frustrating
long
is it
when we
going to take
this}
How many times have we all held onto conditional emotions after the conditions had changed? Long after someone gave us a genuine apology,
we
still
ran their offense through our minds, telling our
friends the story again time.
Or we
and
and our
again, feeling our original hurt or outrage each
short of our
fell
self
years later, continued to feel
own
expectations in a situation and, even
bad about it.
Conditional emotions are meant to come and go with changing conditions.
If
we do
not
with their naturally brief years later keeps
them go
let
lives.
them on an
as conditions change,
is
throws us
off
interfere
Replaying them hours, weeks, months, or
artificial,
mental
life
outrageously beyond their intended
period that
we
support system for a life
span. Doing that
balance and reduces our presence with whatever
is
genuinely occurring in the now.
So later
I
learned— initially because
because
I
realized
it
was
it
a life
got better results from
lesson— to drop
second the unsettling condition changed. That practice as
much as
I
is a
my
my
dog, but
discomfort the
lesson
I
continue to
can.
When we're learning to
open to true
self, it
can be a
relief to realize
that our personality's conditional emotions do not need to control us or interfere
with our well-being.
We can manage them in two simple ways:
COMING HOME
276
1.
While we're
remember that we have
feeling the emotion,
deeper, unconditional love radiating within us that
is
a
our tether
to equanimity. 2.
Let go of the uncomfortable emotion the that triggered
it
moment
the condition
changes.
68 Conditions Change Again
Too soon,
my
assistance
dog organization.
was up and
year with Chloe
I
had
was unprepared
I
to give her
for the loss.
back to the
Day
after day,
my house and car seemed unbearably empty. When I went to the grocery store, I felt like half of me was missing. And sadly, I didn't think I could ever love another dog.
For three weeks without
my
dogl
I
moped, hardly leaving
was my
feeling.
another dog, a one-year old
Golden
Retriever).
wonderful match.
named Rincon
Rincon showed
me
I
was
we
I
I
him
guy
up,
I
I
you'll ever
all
meet
Once
have imagined or predicted the
map
of
my
— and many I
knew,
—people and
Hot Diggity Dog! where Rincon and is
the sweetest business
me happy.
a
personality's limited awareness until
I
stepped into
Now it's a world where unconditional love radiates through me and joy every day.
I
new world to me that I never could or even known I had wanted! It had been off
opened
—
— and he
the dog training
have ever had, and every dog we work with makes again, true self has
a
My love of dogs kept growing,
teach dog training and dog dancing. Rincon I
offered
knew we were
I
another dog after Chloe
dogs doing fun dance steps together).
partner
was
got to keep him.
had mastered
started a side business called
anywhere
Labrador and
learned Canine Freestyle Dance (often called dog dancing
their
so
that
could love
other dogs, too! After he and
Why go
(also a yellow
of picking
just the nicest
loved training. The best part
house.
Then everything changed.
Within hours
He was
my
I
it.
feel
MY STORY: EPILOGUE
277
69
Smooth Not everything
wanted
in
my
has worked out, and some things
life
worked out have seemed to take forever, with
that have
starts along the
moment
I've
Sailing
I
Why
fell
way. Yet, with dogs
in love
endless stops and
has been smooth sailing from the
it
with them back in that hair
has the world of dogs opened to
salon.
me
so easily
and
richly?
Perhaps the answer takes us back to the unconditional love discussed the beginning of this chapter.
I
think that in 2002
my
in
was
personality
opening to a deeper layer of unconditional love within me, and the
moment salon.
match
of breakthrough
From
there,
it's
was
that Ughtning strike of love
easy to understand
how
to the vibration of unconditional love
and say that
I
fell
felt at
the
dogs would be a perfect
— and perfect partners
me to practice the lessons of love that came with it. As we know, the personality might be tempted to to an external source
I
in love
for
attribute that love
with dogs because
they are
so unconditionally loving and wonderful. Yet, as wonderful as dogs are, I
love dogs,
if
my love originates within me.
My true self coaching and classes are still my central focus, but
I
have
learned that there are always rich and rewarding adventures waiting for
us that painting,
we
cannot see
and dogs
yet.
For me, true
are proof of that.
self
channeling, sounding,
Each has taught me that there
is
no
we carry or to the ways it can emerge. No matter who or what is wonderful in our lives, our love always originates within us — because that love is what we are made of. It is our limit to the love
essence, our source, our true
waiting to open
self,
new worlds for us.
and
it is
always gently yet powerfully
CONTACT
Find out more about Martia's products,
classes, speaking,
and
private coaching.
Martia offers special programs for business owners high level business success and juicy, joyful
who want
lives.
Martia Nelson P.O.
Box 1932
Sebastopol,
CA
95473
[email protected]
www.MartiaNelson.com (Get
a free gift.)
Martia and Rincon's dog training:
Hot Diggity Dog!
www.DogDancer.com
(See the fun video clip.)
Martia's nonprofit art project to support people coping with cancer:
Arts for Healing
www.ArtsforHeaHng.com (See beautiful
art
work.)
280
COMING HOME
NOTES
Made 5001019R0
in the
USA
Charleston,
SC
16 April 2010
^
COMING HOME
^